vol. 59, no. 1, 2017 Published by NTEU
ISSN 0818–8068
AUR
Australian Universities’Review
AUR Editor Dr Ian R. Dobson, Monash University
AUR Editorial Board Jeannie Rea, NTEU National President Professor Timo Aarrevaara, University of Lapland Professor Jamie Doughney, Victoria University Professor Leo Goedegebuure, University of Melbourne Professor Jeff Goldsworthy, Monash University Dr Tseen Khoo, La Trobe University Dr Mary Leahy, University of Melbourne Kristen Lyons, University of Queensland Professor Dr Simon Marginson, University of London Mr Grahame McCulloch, NTEU General Secretary Dr Alex Millmow, Federation University Australia Dr Neil Mudford, UNSW@ADFA Professor Paul Rodan, Swinburne University of Technology Cathy Rytmeister, Macquarie University Jim Smith, CAPA National President
Production Design & layout: Paul Clifton Editorial Assistance: Anastasia Kotaidis Cover photograph: Melbourne School of Design, University of Melbourne. Photograph by Anne Morley ©2015.
Contact Details Australian Universities’ Review, c/- NTEU National Office, PO Box 1323, South Melbourne VIC 3205 Australia
Editorial Policy
Style
The Australian Universities’ Review (AUR, formerly Vestes) is published by the National Tertiary Education Union (NTEU) to encourage debate and discussion about issues in higher education and its contribution to Australian public life, with an emphasis on those matters of concern to NTEU members.
Download full Style Guide at www.aur.org.au/submissions.
Editorial decisions are made by the Editor, assisted by the AUR Editorial Board. The views expressed in articles in this publication, unless otherwise stated, are those of the authors and do not necessarily represent the views of the Editor, the Editorial Board or the publisher. Although some contributions are solicited by the Editor or the Editorial Board, AUR is anxious to receive contributions independently from staff and students in the higher education sector and other readers. AUR publishes articles and other contributions, including short commentary and satire. Articles will be assessed by independent referees before publication. Priority is given to contributions that are substantial, lively, original and have a broad appeal. Responses to previously published contributions are encouraged. AUR is listed on the DIISR (formerly DEEWR and DEST) register of refereed journals.
Contributions Please adhere to the style notes outlined on this page.
Contributions are sent to a minimum of two referees, in accordance with DIISR requirements for peer blind review. Contributors should read the website before submitting a paper. It is presumed that authors have followed the standard scholarly ethical practices involved in seeking to have their work published. Authors should take their lead from the Australian Code for the Responsible Conduct of Research.
Books for review should be sent to the Editor. Our policy is to review books dealing either with tertiary education or with matters pertinent to issues in tertiary education. Book reviews should be between 200 and 1200 words; review essays may be longer.
Replies and letters AUR welcomes letters of response to articles published in the journal. Longer responses to articles are also encouraged. Responses should be a maximum of 1,000 words, and should be received within a month after the publication of the journal so that they can be properly considered by the Editor and the Editorial Board for the following issue.
In accordance with NTEU policy to reduce our impact on the natural environment, AUR has been printed using vegetable-based inks with alcohol-free printing initiatives on FSC certified paper by Printgraphics under ISO 14001 Environmental Certification.
Subscriptions AUR is free to NTEU members on an opt-in basis. Full details at www.aur.org.au/subscriptions. Annual subscription rates (inclusive of GST where applicable) are $71.50 AUD (Australia and NZ), $86.00 AUD (overseas airmail). Overseas payments should be made by credit card or bank draft in Australian currency.
Advertising AUR is published twice a year, in February and September. The current hard copy circulation is approximately 8,000 per issue. Rates are available on application to aur@nteu.org.au.
Archive Environment ISO 14001
Dates thus: 30 June 2010. Authors should ensure that the material cited in the text matches the material listed in the References. Neither male nor female pronouns should be used to refer to groups containing persons of both sexes. Do not use numbered sections. Do not use underlining. Do not use footnotes, endnotes or any headers or footers except for page numbers (bottom of page, centred). Avoid use of abbreviations, except for well-known organisations or processes. Tables and figures should be incorporated into the text close to where they are first referred. In general, ‘tables’ comprise data, and ‘figures’ comprise everything else (graphs, photographs, etc.). Do not refer to position of tables/figures (e.g. ‘above’, ‘left’)
References
Email: editor@aur.org.au
NTEU members may opt for ‘soft delivery’ (email notification rather than printed copy) for all NTEU magazines. To access your membership details, log in to the members’ area at www.nteu.org.au.
Use single quotation marks. Use double quotation marks for quotes within a quote. Indent quotes of more than 50 words.
The author’s full contact details should be provided, including email address, telephones and fax.
Book reviews
AUR is also available online as an e-book and pdf. Visit www.aur.org.au for details.
Use a single space at the end of sentences.
Tables and figures should have separate numbered sequences, and titles should be above for tables, and below for figures. Figures should be prepared in black and white. Graphs with coloured bars are often illegible in black-and-white print.
Fax: +613 9254 1915
www.aur.org.au
Use ‘s’ rather than ‘z’ in words such as ‘organise’ (analyse, recognise, etc.).
Contributors should send digital manuscripts in Word format to editor@aur.org.au. Contributions should be between 2,000 and 7,000 words, although longer articles will be considered. All articles should be accompanied by an abstract that would not usually be longer than 150 words.
Phone: +613 9254 1910
Website
Use ‘per cent’ rather than ‘%’ in the text. Use ‘%’ in tables and figures where space is constrained.
This issue and previous issues of AUR can be viewed online at www.aur.org.au.
References to be cited according to APA Publication Manual 6th edition (with minor exceptions). References in the text should be given in the author–date style: King (2004) argues ... or as various authors (King, 2004; Markwell, 2007) argue ... Two co-authors should be cited in the text as (Smith & Jones, 2013). More than two authors cite as (Jones et al., 2011). Page references should be thus: (King, 2004, p. 314). Page references should be used for direct quotations. The reference list should be placed in alphabetical order at the end of the paper, utilising the author–date system. For a reference to a book: Gall, M., Gall, J. & Borg, W. (2003). Education Research: An introduction (7th ed.). New York: Allyn & Bacon. For a journal reference: King, D.A. (2004). What different countries get for their research spending. Nature, 430, 311–316. For a reference to a chapter in a collection: McCollow, J. & Knight, J. (2005). Higher Education in Australia: An Historical Overview, in M. Bella, J. McCollow & J. Knight (Eds). Higher Education in Transition. Brisbane: University of Queensland Press. For a web reference: Markwell, D. (2007). The challenge of student engagement. Retrieved from http://www.catl.uwa.edu.au/__data/ page/95565/Student_engagement_-_Don_Markwell_-_30_Jan_2007.pdf Do not include retrieval dates for web references unless the source material may change over time (e.g. wikis).
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017 Published by NTEU
ISSN 0818–8068
Australian Universities’ Review 2 3
Letter from the editor
Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
Note of authorship change
Building on a paper recently published in AUR, this paper explains how journal citations reflect the ‘geography’ of a discipline.
ARTICLES 4
69 Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose
Ian R Dobson
Students flourish and tutors wither: A study of participant experiences in a first-year online unit Andrea Dodo-Balu
The flexibilities that have widened participation at Australian universities have led to the admission of more ‘non-traditional’ students, but increased casualisation of teaching staff has had a negative impact on casual tutors. 14 Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme. Tertiary Tuition and beyond: Transitioning with strengths and promoting opportunities Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
This paper examines elements of the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme, and describes its success. However, the Scheme is no longer keeping up with developments in online learning and administration. 24 Collaboration in the Humanities, Arts and Social Sciences in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
Collaboration in humanities and social sciences disciplines is on the increase. Analysis of a decade of Web of Science data shows this! 37 Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
In this paper, the author proposes a new approach by universities to expand intakes of disadvantaged students, to concentrate on the identity of those students and how they understand ‘disadvantage’, to establish what they want out of higher education. 47 Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
Student activism is inhibited by students being time-poor. Many students spend more hours working than studying, making it more difficult to be ‘active’. 58 When rating systems do not rate: Evaluating ERA’s performance Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
A paper that keeps up the pressure on the Australian Research Council’s Excellence in Research for Australia (ERA) programme. They scrutinise the way the ARC ranks disciplines at universities from ‘well below’ to ‘well above’ world standard. Just why have some disciplines at some universities been ranked ‘not reported’?
76 Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin: Dialectic relations between the neoliberal think-tank movement and academia in Australia Lester Thompson & David Wadley
This paper examines the place of ideology in the emanations of neoliberal ‘think tanks’. How can universities fight against this? Do they have the will to do so? 87 Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities: A mixed methods pilot study Michelle Gander
This paper compares general staff (aka professional staff, etc.) in the UK and Australia, and finds no significant differences between career attitudes in the two countries. 97 Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
This paper examines practices that can be used to help develop academic leadership. REVIEWS 106 I fought the law, and the law won… (Bobby Fuller Four, 1965) Higher Education and the Law by Sally Varnham, Patty Kamvounias & Joan Squelch (Eds). Reviewed by Pamela O’Connor
108 Teaching by design? Design by teaching? Studio teaching in higher education by Elizabeth Boling, Roland A Schwier, Colin M Gray, Kennon Smith & Katy Campbell. Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
109 HETL be all right on the night! Creative learning in higher education by Linda S Watts & Patrick Blessinger. Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Letter from the editor Ian R Dobson Welcome to another year of Australian Universities’
Jason van Tol examined student activism, to explore
Review. We hope its contents continue to inform and
elements that can enable or constrain it. Drawing data
amuse, as appropriate.
from a questionnaire, interviews and an action research
This issue has ten papers on a wide-range of topics.
project, the study found that a major inhibitor was
First, Andrea Dodo-Balu presents the results of a small
students being time poor. The median student spent
study concerning widening student participation, on-line
more hours per week working than studying, somewhat
programs and casual teaching academics. She found that
limiting the capacity of students to be ‘active’.
the ‘flexibility’ provided by these aspects of contemporary
The Australian Government’s Excellence in Research
university life in Australia ‘…have facilitated successful
for Australia (ERA) has received quite a bit of attention in
entry into the academic community’ of non-traditional
papers published in AUR for the shoddy methodologies
students, that the quality of teaching has not been
used in the discredited journal rating scheme that was
affected, but that there can be a negative impact on the
eventually dumped by the then Minister in May, 2011.The
professional experience of casual tutors.
attention is now turned to the 2015 ERA assessment, in
Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton and Katie Wilson
which universities’ disciplines were rated as being ‘well
examine an Australian government scheme to provide
below’ to well above’ world standing. A sixth category
support to Indigenous students. Their paper considers
‘not rated’ was created, for universities which made a
the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme – Tertiary
submission, but for which ERA assessment committees
Tuition (ITAS-TT), which has been supporting Australian
were unable to rate,‘due to coding errors’. Using Bayesian
Indigenous university students since 1989. ITAS, they find,
modelling, Paul Henman, Scott Brown and Simon Dennis
has provided much valuable support, but is no longer
show that there are ‘…systemic differences in the rating
keeping up with developments in online learning and
processes of the Psychology Field of Research (16) and
administration.
the Medical Research Evaluation Committee that is not
The next paper is about collaboration. The Oxford
evident in other Fields of Research and RECs that are
Dictionary of English (2005, p. 338) lists two meanings
not attributable to institutional factors.’ Curiouser and
for this word. It can mean ‘the action of working with
curiouser!
someone to produce something’, but its second meaning
Also on research metrics, Martin Davies and Angelito
is ‘traitorous cooperation with an enemy’. In their paper
Calma use material from an on-going research program
Collaborations in the humanities, arts and social sciences
based on analyses of citation metrics in key journals.
in Australia, Gaby Haddow, Jianhong Xia and Michele
Based on citation data from two key higher education
Willson take this word in its first meaning, and examined a
journals, they ‘show how citations are a measure of the
decade of Web of Science data to show that collaboration
‘geography’ of a discipline, providing information about
in humanities and social sciences disciplines is on the
the nature of disciplines themselves’.
increase. Perhaps future work could examine higher education collaboration of the traitorous kind!
Lester Thompson and David Wadley look at the relationship between neoliberal think-tanks, and Australian
Tim Pitman examines higher education disadvantage,
academia. They suggest that government media and
and finds that policies and programs follow four distinct
think-tanks ‘aim to “balance” public information through
approaches, to wit creating mass higher education,
ideological promulgations;, and that ‘…universities lack
redistributing places to disadvantaged students, changing
the philosophical positioning, will and organisation
institutions’ cultural practices, and shifting policy focus
effectively to meet this challenge’. Scary stuff!
from access to outcomes/benefits. He proposes a fifth
Michelle Gander examines aspects of what she has
approach: to concentrate on the identity of the students,
described as ‘business management’ staff: managerial,
and how they understand disadvantage, and what they
professional and technical staff, variously described as
want out of higher education.
administrators or professional staff, typically holding
2
Letter from the editor Ian R Dobson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
tertiary qualifications in accounting, human resources,
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Note of authorship change
etc. Her study compared staff in the UK and Australia, and found no significant differences between the career
Australian Universities’ Review published a paper by
attitudes of business management staff in the two
Laurie Field in 2015 entitled ‘Using outperformance pay
countries.
to motivate academics: Insiders’ accounts of promises
Finally, Andrew Bradley, Tim Grice and Neil Paulson examine current practices for developing and promoting academic leadership. They observe that ‘…current university recruitment and promotion procedures have not yet found a way to select adequately for leadership experience and potential. Current practice still tends to prioritise and reward technical achievements within
and problems’ (AUR 57(2), 5-15). In an email dated 15 July 2016, Dr Field wrote [the paper] acknowledges the contribution of Dr Verity Greenwood to data collection. However, upon further reflection and based on deliberations involving Dr Greenwood, I have decided that her contribution warrants acknowledgement as second author …and in place of the footnote about her data collection role.
an individual’s discipline, based on their research and teaching outcomes, as a surrogate for leadership’. How do we fix this?
The online version of the paper has been amended accordingly.
Here endeth the scholarly papers accepted for this issue. Now read the book reviews! Ian R Dobson is editor of Australian Universities’ Review, and an Adjunct Professional Staff member at Monash University, Australia.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Letter from the editor Ian R Dobson
3
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Students flourish and tutors wither A study of participant experiences in a first-year online unit Andrea Dodo-Balu Murdoch University School of Education
Contemporary higher education has been affected by policy pressures built around ‘flexibility’. The policies of widening student participation and expanding flexible online delivery combine to provide the opportunity for a university education to students hitherto largely excluded. Flexible employment policies have increasingly placed university teaching into the hands of casual tutors without permanent academic positions. This article contextualises and outlines initial findings from a qualitative case study of a first year, online unit which is a representative microcosm of the teaching and learning conditions produced by these pressures. While the students in the study felt able to enter the academic community successfully and experience empowering and transformational learning, the tutors felt disempowered and devalued with little hope for a future in the academy. Keywords: Online learning, higher education policy, non-traditional students, first-year, casualisation, sessional academics
Introduction
been tightened and regulatory pressures have increased, requiring universities to adopt flexible workplace models
Flexibility is a key word in the contemporary higher
(Percy & Beaumont, 2008).This has changed employment
education system in Australia. Flexible and diverse entry
patterns at universities, with a decrease in permanent
and exit points, as well as flexible forms of recognising
academic positions and a rise in the number of casual
learning, open up the possibility of attaining a university
teaching staff, both in actual numbers and as a proportion
degree for students ‘…hitherto largely excluded from
of all teaching academics.
university attendance’ (Birrell & Edwards, 2009, p. 8).
In 2010, the proportion of teaching only positions
Flexible modes of course delivery centring on online
taken by casual staff was put at 86.5 per cent while
learning allow a further widening of access to university
52 per cent of all university teaching was performed
studies for students unable or unwilling to travel to
by casuals (National Tertiary Education Union, 2016).
and from campus (Norton, 2014), often due to location,
Australian higher education is therefore experiencing
employment and/or family commitments, or for medical
some of its most substantial growth in two groups
reasons. An increase in university enrolments of ‘non-
which can be regarded as being on the periphery of the
traditional’ students, particularly those classified as
academy: non-traditional students and casual academic
mature-age, regional or remote, low socio-economic
teachers. This article explores the literature on these
status or with disabilities, has been one result. At the
trends, and contextualises and outlines findings from the
same time, government funding for higher education has
initial stage of a case study into a first year, online unit,
4
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
pseudonymously named Academic Transition Unit or
assumed that students entering university are equipped
ATU100 for research purposes. This unit can be seen as
to succeed in their degrees. As stated by James (2010),
a representative microcosm of the conditions produced
‘… universities must accept that one of their roles is to
by three major policy pressures centred on flexibility: the
address shortfalls in schooling for some people’ (p. 10).
widening of student participation; the growth of flexible
Findings by Cupitt and Golshan (2015) suggest that online
online delivery; and the casualisation of academic teaching.
study may form a de-facto equity pathway as students
Using qualitative methods, the overall aim of the research
who are otherwise disadvantaged use online education as
is to develop an in-depth picture of how the participants
a gateway to university.
in ATU100 experience contemporary higher education
Such students are more likely to have a ‘fragile self-
learning and teaching within the unit, and thus allow the
belief” about their capacity to succeed in an academic
effects of these pressures to become more apparent.
environment (Yorke & Longden, 2004, p. 83), less sense
ATU100 is a compulsory first year unit focusing on
of belonging or fitting in at university (Berger, 2000), and
academic conventions, offered online by a major Australian
to be intimidated and overwhelmed by their first year
university through Open Universities Australia (OUA).The
(McInnes & James, 2004). Fully online students have the
number of students studying degree courses fully online
additional challenge of acquiring proficiency in navigating
has grown significantly. According to Norton (2014), 18
the online learning site, at the same time as they are
per cent of all higher education students were studying off-
developing academic competence (Bach et al., 2007). In
campus in 2013. This does not include students studying
response to the needs of non-traditional students, most
via a mix of off-campus and on-campus units. The option
universities offer physical spaces on campus where
of studying their degrees online through avenues such as
students can find academic support but these are not
OUA is taken up by students who have widely varying
generally accessible to online students, putting them at a
reasons for preferring this mode to studying on campus,
further disadvantage (Muldoon & Wijyegewardene, 2012).
creating an extremely diverse cohort. This increase in
While the literature paints an overall bleak picture of
the number of online students has been accompanied
the multiple challenges facing online students who are
by a corresponding growth in online university teaching,
new to university, personal determination and a love of
including the wide-ranging employment of casual
learning appear to be elements that can lead to student
academics as online tutors. This is in line with the trend
success (Stone, 2008).
towards the use of casual teaching academics across universities.The proportion of university teaching carried
Perseverance and retention
out by casual academics is variably put at between 21 per
It has been widely noted that the attrition levels in fully
cent (Norton, 2014) and 53 per cent (Ryan et al., 2011).
online courses are higher than in comparable courses in
This discrepancy reflects casual academics’ secondary
which students complete at least some of their studies
status (Ryan et al., 2011) within the academy, with several
on campus (Cupitt & Golshan, 2015). However, Nichols
universities being unable to provide accurate data on
(2010) discusses the complexity surrounding the issue of
the number of casual academics they employ or the
online student retention and how it can be measured, as
conditions of their employment (Coates et al., 2009). In
well as the fact that a certain level of attrition is normal.
the case of ATU100, more than 90 per cent of the tutors are casuals.
Personal determination is a key element cited by successful online students (Nichols, 2010; Beck &
The students and tutors involved in ATU100 represent
Milligan, 2014). Cupitt and Golshan (2015) suggest
two substantial groups who participate in a learning
that online students need more grit as well as greater
space on the edge of the academy created as a result
institutional and peer support in order to overcome their
of contemporary policy with its emphasis on flexibility.
greater challenges and achieve success. Also important to
The literature points to major difficulties for both these
retention is a genuine excitement about the opportunity
groups.
to participate in university study, which for many students is only possible through the online environment. Stone
From the literature Challenges of online study
(2008) mentions a love of learning and the desire to continue, as well as feelings of independence, fulfilment, confidence and personal growth gained by mature-age
The growth in academic transition units such as ATU100
students entering university via a non-traditional pathway.
is largely due to the recognition that it can no longer be
Mature-aged students are highly represented in ATU100.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
5
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
The importance of the tutor for non-traditional, online students
& Beaumont, 2008; Lazarsfeld-Jensen & Morgan, 2009;
The de-facto equity pathway created by online learning
tutors in units such as ATU100 often strive to develop
results in a high proportion of non-traditional students in
their pedagogical skills in their own time and in isolation.
units such as ATU100.The literature suggests an increased
Brown et al. (2010) state that,‘unlike continuing or fixed-
importance of the tutor’s role in enabling institutions
term staff, casual teaching staff are not paid to develop
to respond effectively to these students’ needs. James
and maintain their knowledge-base, yet are expected
(2010) asserts that new forms of pedagogy are required
to deploy it in the teaching process’ (p. 172). Percy and
as students who do not meet institutions’ current
Beaumont (2008) problematise ‘…taking action on the
perceptions of university-level ability enter the academic
issue of casualisation only in terms of the provision of
community. Yorke (2004) also mentions the need for
adequate training…’ (p. 150). They argue for holistic
radical changes in pedagogy in the context of mature-
professional formation that includes casual academics
aged students, to provide the social element shown to be
within the collegial communities at the universities
important in promoting retention (Tinto, 2007). Thus, the
where they are engaged.
Brown et al., 2010; Gottschalk & McEarchern, 2010).Thus,
ability of the institution to design new pedagogies for non-
Instead, casual academics too often become deskilled
traditional students, and of individual tutors to implement
and marginalised on the ‘tenuous periphery’ of scholarly
them are important concerns for
retention.
Individual
tutors are also shown to have a crucial role to play in supporting the self-belief of non-traditional students and helping them to understand university (Yorke,
expectations 2004;
Yorke
&
life (Brown et al., 2010,
While the literature calls for a reflective, adaptable and innovative pedagogy to meet the needs of both non-traditional and online students, the prevalent use of casual teaching academics means that many online tutors are not given the opportunity to develop such attributes
p. 170) while uncertainty about ongoing employment and their reliance on prior relationships
with
unit
coordinators for continuing work, create a sense of financial vulnerability 2010;
and
personal
(Brown Gottschalk
et
Longden 2004; McInnis &
al.,
James, 2004).
McEachern, 2010; Lazarsfeld
&
In online learning environments, ‘…tutors… act as the
Jensen & Morgan, 2009). Despite these adverse conditions,
human interface between the university and its students’
‘the risk casualisation poses to the individual worker
(Quartermaine et al., 2012, p. 66).The literature on online
barely rates a mention in government and university
higher education emphasises teaching presence as being
policy and guidelines’ (Percy & Beaumont, 2008, p. 147).
key to the quality of the student experience (Garrison et
Rather, discussions generally centre on the perceived risk
al., 2010).‘The instructor does not become less important
that casualisation poses to the quality of teaching that
in e-learning…students experience the instructors’
students receive (Ryan et al., 2011).
support and expertise as especially important…’ (Paechter et al., 2010, p. 228). Thus, pedagogical and technological
The relevance of ATU100
innovations (Garrison, 2011) are involved in the response to the growth of flexible online delivery. Participation
The two pressures of widening student participation
in online learning spaces is a complex phenomenon
and delivering flexible online learning create the need
(Hratinski, 2008). Bach et al. (2007) emphasise the need
for academic transition units that are taught fully online.
for skilful and experienced facilitation of online learning,
The third pressure of casualising academic teaching
conceivably requiring time and the provision of quality
ensures that casual tutors are highly represented amongst
professional learning to develop.
teaching staff. ATU100 encapsulates the conditions which
The casualisation of academic teaching
produced these three policy pressures in a bounded teaching and learning space providing a setting for
While the literature calls for a reflective, adaptable and
investigating the type of experiences these conditions
innovative pedagogy to meet the needs of both non-
create for tutors and students. ATU100 is a large unit with
traditional and online students, the prevalent use of casual
the Open University versions regularly enrolling 500
teaching academics means that many online tutors are not
to 600 students per study period. The majority of these
given the opportunity to develop such attributes (Percy
students have been away from study for some time, and
6
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
these students generally enrol in ATU100 as the first
research and their interaction with current ATU100
unit towards their bachelor degree, which makes it an
students and colleagues.
important gateway to a positive and successful university
The students in the sample had completed the
experience. Given the potential problems emphasised in
unit previously, and were chosen as a response to the
the literature, the student experience could be expected
theoretical evidence of the importance of personal
to be difficult, if not overwhelming. Nevertheless, findings
determination and tutor support to perseverance in the
suggest that ATU100 is meeting its aims for students,
online learning environment, as outlined above. All three
which centre on equipping them for successful entry into
students had expressed doubts to their tutor about their
the academic community.This also suggests that tutors are
academic ability at an interim point in their study periods,
delivering the unit successfully.
but subsequently completed the unit successfully. The initial research stage has utilised in-depth interviews
The interviews Methodology As a qualitative/interpretivist case study focusing on
supported by statistical findings derived from larger external surveys. Findings have been grouped into the following emerging themes:
of the unit participants in dealing with the effects of the
Online study is a gateway to university opportunities
three major pressures outlined above, using constructive
The data provided by the students who formed the
grounded theory for data analysis. Interpretivist research
initial research sample paint a bright picture of the
seeks to ‘…get into the head of the actor’ (Schwandt,
benefits to students provided by the policies of widening
2000, p. 192) in order to gain a deep understanding of
student participation and flexible online delivery. All
their lived experience. However, Laverty (2003) cautions
three students were enthusiastic about the unit and the
that this understanding is necessarily combined with
opportunity to study at university level, as comments
subjective meanings brought by the researcher, as the act
from the interviews reveal. Student 1 (S1): ‘I think it’s
of interpreting is influenced by their socio-historically
an amazing unit.’ Student 2 (S2): ‘It’s been wonderful for
inherited traditions and personal experiences (Laverty,
me.’ Student 3 (S3): ‘Yes, very happy. I really enjoyed the
2003).
course.’ It was specifically the opportunity to study a
ATU100, this research aims to capture the experience
In addition to my role as researcher, I have participated
degree online that enabled these students access to the
in ATU100 as a tutor, adding a subjective, insider lens.
university experience, supporting the contention that
Constructive grounded theory acknowledges the place of
online study acts as a de-facto equity pathway (Cupitt &
researcher subjectivity (Charmaz, 2014) in constructing
Golshan, 2015).
theory from data and moves away from the positivist
S1 experiences health problems which make her
view that theory is something external to be discovered.
intermittently house bound, S2 lives in a rural location,
Engaging with early findings is an important element
while S3 has been diagnosed with bipolar disorder which
of emerging design, a pivotal grounded theory strategy
makes going to campus a stressful experience. In S3’s own
whereby the researcher uses constant analysis of data
words, ‘In spite of having greater stability, if I’d attempted
to inform and design the subsequent research stages.
to do a real-time course rather than an online course…I
Initial sampling addresses the initial research questions
think the pressures probably would have been too much
to start the process of establishing theoretical categories
for me even at this point.’ The flexibility of online study
and refining the research design according to established
is also beneficial to these students. ‘The online courses
sampling criteria (Charmaz, 2014).
allow me to pace myself so as to minimise any disruption
The sample This phase involved a sample of three tutors and three
to my medical treatment’ (S1).‘It is easier to fit around my life…so it was my only option.’ (S2).
both ethical and theoretical concerns in mind. The three
Technical and pedagogical problems are associated with online learning
tutors were chosen because they were not tutoring this
The online learning experience was not without
specific unit at the time the research was conducted.
its problems. S2 mentioned being scared off by the
This was a response to the ethical concern of a possible
technological aspect of studying online for some time
conflict of interest between their participation in the
before taking the plunge and enrolling. ‘Technologically
students who had participated in ATU100, selected with
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
7
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
I think it was a huge challenge, and the lack of self-
Students feel part of a learning community
confidence in that sense…’. S1 felt ‘isolated and alone’
Despite the drawbacks students associated with studying
as an online student at times, and frustrated with the
online, none of the students felt that these were significant
asynchronous nature of the learning site. ‘Waiting for
impediments to their studies. In fact, there were aspects
answers is the most difficult aspect of studying online’
of the online learning experience that they particularly
(S1).
enjoyed, and all found it possible to feel part of a learning
Tutors also found the practical use of technology for
community. Due to having a mental illness, one of the
online teaching to be a challenge. In their interviews,
reasons behind S3’s choice of online study was the desire
there was a sense of being thrown in at the deep end,
to avoid studying in groups of people. Despite this, being
with little or ineffectual training. As tutor (T1) put it in
in the learning community provided by the unit was
her interview, ‘I was just into this world...[where] I was
something she found enjoyable, enriching and supportive.
expected to know what I was doing because I was the
‘I found it an amazing group of people…There was a
tutor of an online unit.’ Tutor 2 (T2) also felt unprepared,
feeling of being in a safety net [because] there were these
‘I am reasonably technically proficient, I’m a bit of a
open-minded, sympathetic kind of people that were there
geek, but I still struggled.’ Tutor 3 (T3) mentioned that
to talk to if I needed it…’ (S3).
the pedagogical aspects of the online environment were
Although S1 mentioned feeling isolated and alone
challenging at first, ‘When I first started I really just went
during her interview, she also found that the real-time,
in cold…It was difficult to know [what] should I spend
interactive sessions offered at intervals during the study
time on…”.
period were effective in creating a sense of community.
Online tutors have a heavier workload
‘It made me feel like I was actually part of a class rather than separate…It gave us a bit of camaraderie...’ S2 found
The workload associated with online teaching and the
the engagement in the discussion area ‘…important
expectation of being constantly available to students
because it enables you to feel part of the community’ just
were other issues mentioned by the tutors, a finding
as effectively as in a face-to-face classroom.‘You don’t feel
that reflects other studies such as that undertaken by
like you’re isolated out in the bush somewhere battling
Tynan, Ryan and Lamont-Mills (2015). Despite having
with the Internet…there are actually people out there
taught ATU100 face to face, T1 felt that she needed to
that you have …common ground with…’
start again from scratch when tutoring the unit online
There is certainly a sense of genuine connectedness
for the first time, ‘…because it was just so different…
with a learning community revealed through these
the hours I did for the hours I got paid would have
comments. Students appreciated the richness provided
been just daft.’ T2 also felt that the hours she put into
by meeting and interacting with people who have diverse
the unit were ‘much, much more than I got paid for…’
life experiences, through the common bond of studying
but mentioned ‘…it’s the same for internal tutoring.’
ATU100.
T1 felt that online students were ‘more needy in terms because you don’t answer within the day…or the hour.’
Tutors face a complex learning space with minimal support
T3 also felt that online students were demanding, as ‘...
For the tutors, the diversity of the students was seen as
students…got quite annoyed that they couldn’t ring me
challenging. The OUA cohort compared with on campus
and talk to me…’ rather than communicating via email.
students clearly presents tutors with a wider range of
of constant attention. Students get upset with you
However, causal tutors, particularly those who teach
people and situations to manage, some of which can be
online, are not given space on campus or access to
quite extreme. ‘I had one [student] who was sleeping
university phone lines. Communicating to students
in her car, she’d been kicked out of her house, with two
by phone would necessitate handing out personal
children…’ (T3).There was a perceived lack of preparation
numbers, which tutors are reluctant to do.There is clearly
in ways to manage the online, non-traditional cohort
frustration with the constraints of online learning being
represented in the unit in comparison to on-campus
expressed on the students’ part. Fielding this frustration
students, and how to translate the teaching skills gained
adds to the tutors’ workload, ‘…because you don’t know
in the face to face classroom to the online environment.
how to answer 50 emails…how to stop the train’ (T1).
‘I would have loved some pre-training in the technical
In contrast, the students made no mention of a heavier
aspects, and the nature of the teaching…it is a separate
workload associated with online study.
thing but it is all meshed in together’ (T1).
8
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
complex pedagogical aspects of their work seem to
Students’ personal determination was important to completion of the unit
be completely lacking. Such opportunities would be
The three students of the initial sample all found the
welcomed, ‘…. because then I could actually feel that I
learning community and tutor support to be beneficial
was advancing my knowledge and my career…and getting
aspects of their experience in ATU100. A further crucial
acknowledged for it’ (T1). Instead, there was ‘…maybe the
element for persevering in the unit was their own personal
odd coffee with the unit coordinator or the other tutors
determination, or grit. S3 felt she could link the strength
once in a while…but no formal avenue to discuss how
gained from dealing with a mental illness to persistence in
it was all going’ (T3). Tutors felt devalued by the lack of
the unit. ‘I think it just gives you this inner determination
opportunities afforded to them to develop as university
or drive…to accomplish things.’ For both S2 and S3,
Formal opportunities to develop and reflect on the
educators. ‘The reluctance
personal
of the university system to
was a major driver that
invest in our futures and in professional
development
for us…reduces our ability to teach’ (T2). Tutors did, however,
appreciate
richness
of
“Despite doubts and challenges, the overall experience of the students interviewed in this initial research phase was one of empowerment.”
the
determination
enabled them to complete the unit. ‘Persistence and determination…You’ve
got
to want it’ (S2). Each student found the
experience
experience of completing the
brought by the diversity of the OUA cohort. ‘It becomes
unit uplifting and empowering. Developing technological
more challenging to teach because you’re dealing with
proficiency and coping with online learning, interacting
more diverse backgrounds, levels, experiences…and…
with fellow students, discovering resilience and achieving
it is more rewarding because of the same things’ (T1).
success with challenging academic material, all combined
‘They have so much more in their brains to bring to their
to transform students’ self-perceptions and their personal
education’ (T2).
self-esteem, as well as how they see the world around them.
Tutors have an important supporting role Even though tutors are dealing with complex challenges
Transformational learning was achieved by students
within the online learning space with little preparation
In this way, it seems that transformational learning was
and almost no professional development opportunities,
achieved by the three students interviewed. According
they still put in long hours and strive to do their best
to Willans and Seary (2011), transformational learning
for their students ‘…because you want to do a good job,
occurs when students construct new meaning structures
that’s what you do’ (T1). Tutors found they needed to
to make sense of their changing world and the changes
provide more emotional support and understanding to
within themselves. S1 valued the opportunity to ‘…
the OUA cohort. ‘My support mostly consists of sending
challenge my preconceived ideas…[and] look through a
back emails that said,“Don’t panic, remember to breathe”,
different lens…at the world.’ She found that the unit ‘…
rather than, “This is how you do it”’ (T2). T3 felt the need
altered my perception of even who I am as an individual
to be different things to different students as some “…
and where I fit within the social norms…’ S3 also ‘found
need that continual support”.
the material really interesting…to be able to figure out
The
students
interviewed
found
tutor
support
important to their experience in the unit. Both S1 and
my viewpoints on a lot of things I hadn’t thought about in a while.’
S3 considered dropping out at points during the study
S2 gained a new sense of self-confidence in her ability
period. ‘There were certainly times when I considered
to articulate her ideas. ‘I feel now I have something
quitting not only the unit but the entire degree’ (S1).
to say… I’m not just a housewife who is dated…I’m a
Amongst other things, ‘...personal emails to the tutor
different person now.’ The students also experienced a
kept me going’ (S1). S3 found intensive tutor guidance at
great sense of personal achievement in completing the
the start of the unit helped her cope with the more self-
unit successfully. ‘It was fantastic! It was a really good...
directed learning expected towards the end of the study
confidence boost to get that mark’ (S3). Despite doubts
period. S2 also appreciated the accessibility of her tutor,
and challenges, the overall experience of the students
who ‘encouraged me beyond what I could imagine.’
interviewed in this initial research phase was one of empowerment.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
9
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Tutors are disempowered
interviewed fit with the primary demographic traits
This sense of empowerment and enhanced self-esteem
of the cohort, and their successful completion of the
was not an outcome shared by the tutors. In fact, the
unit is widely shared by students who begin ‘genuine
opposite seemed to be the case as tutors felt devalued and
participation’ in the unit as defined below. A large survey
powerless across many aspects of their work. The tutors
of casual staff conducted in 2014 by Voice Project (used
felt that the lack of opportunity to have a consistent
with permission) at the university which offers the unit
presence on campus negatively impacted on both their
confirms that the concerns expressed by the tutors who
teaching and their relationships with their colleagues
were interviewed are also widely shared.
within the academic community. ‘You don’t necessarily have the relationships with on campus people’ (T3).
The student cohort
Tutors’ ongoing uncertainty about whether their work in
Information and a link to the Online Learner Engagement
the unit would continue seemed to have a strong effect on
Survey was posted on the unit’s online sites across an
their emotional wellbeing: ‘You feel really slapped in the
eighteen-month period resulting in 126 responses from
face for that… I hate it’ (T1);‘It doesn’t really seem fair…I
ATU100 students. The results show that the OUA version
was hurt…’ (T3), and their financial wellbeing: ‘I don’t
of the unit enrols a very different age group from the
have job security…so there’s the financial consequence
on-campus version where the majority of students are
of not having secure employment’ (T2).
still school leavers. Of the respondents, students over the
This uncertainty seemed to create a strong feeling
age of 25 accounted for 78 per cent of the cohort, with
of powerless frustration. All three tutors felt that the
the largest numbers in the 30 to 49 age group. Three-
allocation of work was based on a unit coordinator’s
quarters of respondents were female. All three students
arbitrary preferences rather than experience or merit. T1
interviewed fit this demographic. The survey data also
felt her years of experience in both on-campus and online
suggest the OUA course cohort contains a higher portion
teaching was invisible to the university. ‘You get more and
of students with other important commitments in life
more experience but you actually get no recognition for
besides study, which also emerged from the interviews.
that at all.’ If formal recognition of teaching excellence
Information on educational attainment support the idea
does occur, it seems to have no bearing on allocation of
that the OUA students have been away from study for
work, as T3’s experience demonstrates: ‘I’ve had an award
some time.
for professionalism, I’ve also had the OUA tutor award, I’ve
In addition, 37 per cent of respondents indicated that
worked as a coordinator... Now [the unit] has gone through
they were the first in their family to study at university.
another revolution and a new unit coordinator... so I’m not
These figures point to a large number of ATU100 students
being offered the work.’ University teaching appears to
being initially unfamiliar with contemporary university
operate ‘...informally on a system of patronage’ (T2).
level study. Further to this, 61 per cent of respondents
Building
and
maintaining
relationships
is
vital.
indicated that they were mostly new to the subject of
However, if unit coordinators move on or are replaced,
their degree, highlighting the importance of the transition
the relationships vanish with them. The rewards of being
phase provided by ATU100. The students interviewed
a casual tutor appear to be limited to personal satisfaction
had all been away from study for a number of years, and
for teaching well.As T1 says,‘I keep coming back because I
welcomed the transitional aspect of the unit. S1 was first
actually enjoy teaching.’ However, this type of satisfaction
in family and new to university study, S2 had completed
has its limits and all three tutors felt that there was no
a degree, but in a very different field, while S3 had twice
future for them in university teaching.As T2 noted,‘people
attempted university study but had withdrawn.
move on... away from teaching. People leave academia.’
Statistical findings
Retention and attrition The figures from the online learning site of one study period were analysed, and are closely representative of
Data from the Online Learner Engagement Survey 2014-
other study periods for ATU100 and indeed OUA in general.
2015 conducted by National Centre for Student Equity in
At first glance the attrition rate is alarming. For the study
Higher Education (used with permission) and from the
period in question, of all the students who enrolled in the
ATU100 online learning site suggest that the positive
unit, only 39 per cent completed, indicating a 61 per cent
outcomes that emerged from the student interviews are
attrition rate. However, a closer look raises the question
reflective of the wider unit cohort. The three students
as to whether many of the enrolled students had any
10
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
real intention of participating. Seventeen per cent of the
and casualisation of academic teaching, seem to have
students never logged into Blackboard, while a further 30
impacted the tutors in the study more negatively than
per cent never submitted assignments.Thus, 47 per cent of
the students. The literature suggests that non-traditional
enrolling students did not begin what could be considered
online students who are new to university face multiple
as full participation in the unit.This may indicate that some
challenges. Initial findings from the case study indicate that
students have different reasons for enrolling in the unit
for some students these challenges can be successfully
than a firm decision to undertake a degree.
overcome. The fragile self-belief of students reported in
Taking the remaining students, who attempted at least
the study by Yorke & Longden (2004) can be strengthened
the first assignment, as the participating cohort, the rate
and transformed, as they successfully manage feelings of
of non-completion falls to 28 per cent. This supports the
being intimidated and overwhelmed (McInnes & James,
contention of Nichols that the complexity surrounding
2004) by their first university experience, and discover
student retention must be taken into account when
themselves to be capable of persevering and completing
attempting to understand the online student experience.
the unit to a high standard. The literature points out
‘Difficulties arise in terms of who to count as having
potential problems for non-traditional, online students
dropped out’ (Nichols, 2010, p. 95). While the literature
in developing a sense of belonging to the university
indicates
non-traditional,
community (Berger, 2000). However, the students
online students, the statistics from the study period
interviewed were able to share a sense of supportive
analysed suggest students were able to overcome these
camaraderie with their peers through the online learning
challenges and achieve success in the unit. The majority
site. Pedagogical challenges in meeting the needs of online
of students who demonstrated an intention to participate
and non-traditional students (James, 2010; Yorke, 2004)
experienced success in this study period, reflective of the
appear to have been met successfully within the unit, as
students who were interviewed.
students’ comments showed high levels of satisfaction
significant
challenges
for
with the unit content, as well as the support offered by
Tutor dissatisfaction
their tutors. The statistics from a typical study period indicate that a good proportion of participating students
The 2014 survey of casual staff conducted at the
can be successful in the unit, which may indicate that the
university which offers the unit reveals that the
experience of the students who were interviewed is more
dissatisfaction expressed the tutors who participated
widely shared.
in the research is common. The survey was conducted
Given the greater complexities afforded by units such
online and received 353 responses. Staff were asked to
as ATU100, and the lack of opportunities given to casual
respond to a range of statements using a five-point Likert
tutors to develop their professional skills in response, it
scale. Regarding reasons for choosing casual teaching, the
appears that tutors are donating significant amounts of
highest agreement was given to a statement describing
their own time to achieve a quality experience for their
the satisfaction gained from helping students learn, which
students. This suggests that personal goodwill rather than
is reflective of interview responses.
institutional strategy is being used to ensure the quality
In the overall survey, the two lowest rates of agreement
of teaching provided by casual tutors. However, this
were in the category of career opportunities, specifically
brings significant personal cost to the individual tutors as
the lack of a career path and of opportunities for permanent
revealed through the interviews above. Concerns about
positions. Fairness and equity, pay and recognition, and
poor working conditions for casual academic teachers
workload and wellbeing, were the other categories which
are expressed repeatedly in the literature (Brown et al.,
garnered very low rates of agreement, detailing a lack of
2010; Gottschalk & McEachern, 2010; Lazarsfeld Jensen &
consistency with how staff are managed, not being valued
Morgan, 2009; Junor, 2003), yet clearly persist for the tutors
by the university, and a lack of commitment to staff
who were interviewed. As a result, tutors felt isolated and
wellbeing. These responses are entirely consistent with
devalued and saw little hope for their future in academia.
the concerns mentioned by the research participants.
Conclusion Discussion ATU100 is a unit in which the effects of contemporary The three flexibility pressures which are highlighted by
higher education policies centring on flexibility in
the unit: widening student participation, online delivery
teaching and learning are revealed. While the sample
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
11
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
investigated here is very small, given the comparisons with wider surveys, these finding are likely to reflect more general, student and staff attitudes. For students, policies of widening student participation and online access to university study have facilitated successful entry into the academic community and allowed them to experience transformational learning. Theoretical sampling through the case study’s subsequent stages will need to focus on more diverse student experience in an attempt to understand why students enrol but do not participate in the unit, or start participation but do not complete. The extent to which the positive results expressed by the three students in this initial research stage are shared by other successful students in the unit also needs further investigation. Workplace flexibility does not seem to have negatively affected the quality of teaching in ATU100, but has had a negative effect on the quality of the professional experience for the three tutors interviewed, as well as on their personal self-esteem and optimism for the future. Again, it will be important to ascertain how widely this experience is shared by other tutors in the unit, and colleagues in similar employment situations. While it seems clear that contemporary employment practices at universities have a deep impact on casual teaching academics, the extent to which permanent academic staff and those on short term contracts are affected also needs to be considered. Further in-depth interviews for all the participants in the initial research phase will be important, as consistent with the constructive grounded theory method. For the students, these interviews should show whether their experience in ATU100 has consolidated into continuing successful university study, and for the tutors, they may reveal whether they have persevered with university teaching or taken their expertise to different fields of employment. For both these groups, the ongoing effects of the policies which create the peripheral space they occupy may then be further brought to light. Andrea Dodo-Balu is a Doctor of Education candidate at Murdoch University, Western Australia, with a strong interest in student and workplace equity. Contact: A.Dodo-Balu@murdoch.edu.au
References Bach, S., Haynes, P., & Lewis Smith, J. (2007). Online teaching and learning in higher education. Berkshire: Open University Press McGraw-Hill Education. Beck, H.P. & Milligan, M. (2014). Factors influencing the institutional
12
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
commitment on online students. Internet and Higher Education, 20, 51-56. doi:10.1016/j.iheduc.2013.09.002 Berger, J. B. (2000). Optimizing capital, social reproduction, and undergraduate persistence. In J. Braxton (Ed.), Reworking the student retention puzzle (pp. 95-124). Retrieved from http://web.ebscohost.com.ezproxy.ecu.edu.au/ehost/ pdfviewer?sid=b7aeb5de-eb1f-4d08-b6c7-e78f30bd6502%40sissionmgr12&vid =4&hid= Birrell, B., & Edwards, D. (2009). The Bradley Review and access to higher education. Australian Universities’ Review, 51(1), 4-13. Retrieved from http:// search.informit.com.au.dbgw.lis.curtin.edu.au/fullText;dn=174384;res=AEIPT Brown, T., Goodman, J., & Yasukawa, K. (2010). Academic causalisation in Australia: Class divisions in the university. Journal of Industrial Relations, 52(2), 169-182. doi:10.1177/0022185609359443 Charmaz, K. (2014). Constructing grounded theory: a practical guide through qualitative analysis. (2nd ed.) London: Sage Publications. Coates, H., Dobson, I., Geodegebuure, L., & Meek, V.L. (2009). Australia’s causal approach to its academic teaching workforce. People and Place, 17(4), 47-54. Retrieved from http://search.informit.com.au.dbgw.lis.curtin.edu.au/fullText;dn =720431868065538;res=IELAPA Cupitt, C & Golshan, N. (2015). Participation in higher education online: Demographics, motivators, and grit. STARS Conference. Melbourne, Australia. Retrieved from http://unistars.org/papers/http:/www.unistars.org Garrison, D. R. (2011). E-learning in the 21st century (2nd ed.). Retrieved from http://reader.eblib.com.au.dbgw.lis.curtin.edu.au Garrison, D., Cleveland-Innes, M., & Fung, T.S. (2010). Exploring causal relationships among teaching, cognitive and social presence: Student perceptions of the community of inquiry framework. Internet and Higher Education, 13, 31-36. doi:10.1016/j.iheduc.2009.10.002 Gottschalk, L., & McEachern, S. (2010). The frustrated career: Casual employment in higher education. Australian Universities’ Review, 52(1), 37-50. Retrieved from http://issuu.com/nteu/docs/aur_52-01 Hratinski, S. (2008). What is online learner participation? A literature review. Computers & Education, 51, 1755-1765. doi:10.1016/j.compedu.2008.05.005 James, R. (2010). Identifying, recruiting and retaining students for lower socioecnonic status backgrounds: An analysis of Australia’s plans for expanding access and improving equity. EAIR 32nd Annual Forum (pp. 1-12). Valencia, Spain: The European Higher Education Society. Retrieved from http://issuu.com/ nteu/docs/aur_52-01 Junor, A. (2003). Casual university work: Choice, risk, inequity and the case for regulation. The Economic and Labour Relations Review, 14(2), 276-304. Retrieved from http://search.informit.com.au.dbgw.lis.curtin.edu.au/fullText;dn =526531483428236;res=IELBUS Laverty, S. (2003). Hermeneutic phenomenology and phenomenology: A comparison of historical and methodological considerations. International Journal of Qualitiative Methods, 2(3), 21-35. Retrieved from https://ejournals. library.ualberta.ca/index.php/IJQM/article/view/4510/3647 Lazarsfeld Jensen, A., & Morgan, K. (2009). Overload: The role of work-volume escalation and micro-management of academic work patterns in loss of morale and collegiality at UWS; the way forward. Retrieved from http://www. nteu.org.au/library/view/id/52 McInnis, C., & James, R. (2004). Access and retention in higher educaiton. In M. Yorke, & B. Longden, Retention and student success in higher education (pp. 34-44). Berkshire: Society for Research into Higher Education & Open University Press. Muldoon, R., & Wijeyewardene , I. (2012). Two approaches to mentoring students into academic practice at university. Journal of Australian and New Zealand Student Services Association, Apr2012(39), 21-31. Retrieved from web.a.ebscohost.com/
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
National Tertiary Education Union. (2016). Casuals and insecure work. Retrieved from http://www.nteu.org.au/policy/workforce_issues/insecure_work Nichols, M. (2010). Student perceptions of support services and the influence of targeted interventions on retention in distance education. Distance Education, 31(1), 91-113. doi:10.1080/01587911003725048 Norton, A. (2014). Mapping Australian higher education, 2014-15, Melbourne: Grattan Institute. Paechter, M., Maier, B. & Macher, D. (2010) Students’ expectations of, and experiences in e-learning: Their relation to learning achievements and course satisfaction. Computers and Education 54, 222-229. doi:10.1016/ jcomped.2009.08.005 Percy, A., & Beaumont, R. (2008). The casualisation of teaching and the subject at risk. Studies in Continuing Education, 30(2), 145-157. doi:10.1080/01580370802097736 Quartermaine, L., O’Hare, S., & Cooke, A. (2012). Using wikis for effective peer assessment. In A. Herrington, J. Schrape, & K Singh. (Eds.), Engaging students with learning technologies (pp. 65-76). Retrieved from http://espace.library. curtin.edu.au/T?func=dbin-jump-full&local_base=gen01-era02&object_ id=187303 Ryan, S., Groen, E., McNeil, K., Nadohly, A. & Bhattacharyya, A. (2011). Sessional employment and quality in universities: A risky business. HERDSA 34th Annual International Conference (pp. 275-284). Gold Coast, Australia. Retrieved from http://www.herdsa.org.au/wp-content/uploads/conference/2011/ papers/HERDSA_2011_Ryan.PDF
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Schwandt, T. (2000). Three epistemological stances for qualitative inquiry. In N. Denzin, & Y. Lincoln, Handbook of qualitative research (pp. 189-213). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage. Stone, C. (2008). Listening to individual voices and stories: The mature-age student experience. Australian Journal of Adult Learning, 48(2), 265-290. Retrieved from http://files.eric.ed.gov/fulltext/EJ809724.pdf Tinto, V. (2007). Research and practice of student retention: What next? Journal of College Student Retention, 8(1), 1-19. Retrieved from http://search.proquest. com.dbgw.lis.curtin.edu.au/docview/196725129?accountid=10382 Tynan, B., Ryan, Y. & Lamont-Mills, A. (2015). Examining workload models in online and blended teaching. British Journal of Educational Technology, 36(1), 5-15. doi:10.1111/bjet.12111 Willans, J. & Seary, K. (2011). I feel like I’m being hit from all directions: Enduring the bombardment as a mature-age learner returning to formal learning. Australian Journal of Adult Learning, 51(1), 119-142. Retrieved from http://files.eric.ed.gov/fulltext/EJ951989.pdf Yorke, M. (2004). Retention, persistence and success in on-campus higher education, and their enhancement in open and distance learning. Open Learning: The Journal of Open, Distance and e-Learning, 19(1), 19-32. doi:10.1080/0268051042000177827 Yorke, M., & Longden, B. (2004). Retention and student success in higher education. Berkshire: Society for Research into Higher Education & Open University Press.
Students flourish and tutors wither Andrea Dodo-Balu
13
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Tertiary Tuition and beyond: Transitioning with strengths and promoting opportunities Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton Southern Cross University & University of Notre Dame Australia
Katie Wilson Victoria University of Wellington
The Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme-Tertiary Tuition (ITAS-TT) has provided Australian government funding for one-to-one and group tutorial study support for Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students attending Australian universities since 1989. It has been a central plank supporting Indigenous university students in their studies. However, evaluation of the scheme has identified quality limitations, under-utilisation, administrative burdens, and eligibility issues, and criticised the deficit or low academic expectations assumptions inherent in the scheme. In the 2016-2017 Budget the Australian government modified ITAS into an Indigenous Student Success Program. Reporting on research undertaken at a time of impending changes to funding arrangements and the continuation of ITAS, this paper builds on recent research into the transition of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islanders into higher education. The paper investigates the scheme through the perspectives of ITAS tutors and Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students receiving ITAS tutoring in two regional universities in New South Wales. Qualitative research found that ITAS tutoring has enabled many students to manage their transition through university and complete their studies. Students and tutors identified limitations in the scheme in terms of guidelines, institutional expectations, access to learning management systems, and the timing of support. The study outcomes suggest that ITAS provides valuable support but has become static, and is not keeping up with developments in online learning and administration. Keywords: Indigenous students, ITAS, Indigenous Advancement Strategy, Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students
Introduction
Wilks, Wilson, Hughes, & Thomas, 2014). However, the same research found some aspects of the administration
We were driven to begin this research project by
and implementation of ITAS to be cumbersome. Further,
impending changes to the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance
it found the scheme is less successful for students
Scheme-Tertiary Tuition (ITAS-TT). Comments from
studying in remote locations and in regional centres as
students and staff in research undertaken in 2012 with
there are often fewer potential tutors who meet the ITAS
Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander academics and
requirements, and those who do fit the criteria rarely have
students at 26 universities attested to the value of the
time to tutor all students requiring tutoring.
tuition scheme in enabling many students to continue,
Following the election of the conservative Liberal-
engage with and achieve in higher education (Kinnane,
National Coalition Government in September 2013,
14
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Indigenous Affairs became part of the portfolio of the
students do not need or use ITAS tutoring, and student
Department of the Prime Minister and Cabinet. A review
success depends on multiple factors (Whatman et al.,
of all Indigenous funding followed, and the realignment
2008). At the Queensland University of Technology,
of funding under a new Indigenous Advancement
Indigenous students had high rates of completion and
Strategy replaced more than 150 individual programs
participation, yet only 25 per cent used ITAS. Changed
and activities with five broad programs (Department of
requirements in 2004 included reporting to government
the Prime Minister and Cabinet, 2014). This extended
ITAS student results, different tutoring methods and
to ITAS funding in 2014. Concerns arose in the higher
student attendance, although subsequent government
education sector that a proposed change from funding
feedback to universities was not useful for improving the
allocations based on student numbers to universities
quality of the program (Whatman et al., 2008).
bidding for funding on a competitive basis would mean
Into 2015, ITAS provided two hours of individual or
that universities with fewer Indigenous students could
group tutoring per week per subject for undergraduate
miss out on funding altogether (Liddle, 2014). Although
students plus five supplemental hours for exam
existing funding arrangements continued into 2015 and
preparation for eligible students. Limited tutoring was
2016, the Minister for Indigenous Affairs foreshadowed
available for postgraduate students (Trudgett, 2010) or
changes to future funding and support (Scullion, 2014).
students undertaking bridging or preparatory courses.
While this paper is unlikely to bring about changes
ITAS is administered through Indigenous Education Units
itself, we hope it is timely, given the scheme is in a
or Indigenous student support services at individual
transition period, and that it will contribute to knowledge
universities, providing valuable assistance to Aboriginal
and understanding of the benefits and strengths of ITAS,
and Torres Strait Islander university students at university
and of identified areas for improvement, for Aboriginal
(Patton, Lee Hong, Lampert, Burnett, & Anderson, 2012).
and Torres Strait Islander university students, particularly
However, the administration and management varies
in relation to regional universities. The paper discusses
from one institution to the next. Some universities have
the outcomes of a research project that investigated
adapted or added to ITAS in order to meet the needs of
the views and experiences of students, tutors and other
Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students better, and
university personnel in relation to the operation and the
to streamline administration (Whatman et al., 2013).
role of ITAS in two regional New South Wales universities.
In 2013, Kinnane et al. (2014) found that ITAS was
Through the participants’ insights, this paper identifies
recognised as a key enabler of student performance
the significance of the scheme in supporting Aboriginal
and was a reliable and central means of engaging
and Torres Strait Islander university students at different
students successfully, despite its administrative and
stages of their study. We argue that ITAS continues to
implementation limitations and inflexibility. Further,
have merit and strengths for students and tutors, and
ITAS often takes effect too late when students have
needs to persist, building on its strengths and success, and
already left university after early negative experiences.
widening participation.
In a critique of ITAS, Whatman et al. (2008) focused on processes at QUT and student outcomes, questioning its
Background
deficit model as an explanation of student success or otherwise. The authors emphasised the need for further
The Australian Department of Education introduced the
research and analysis of the uptake of ITAS, and the use
Aboriginal Tutorial Assistance Scheme in 1989 as a strategic
of broader indicators such as students’ understandings
initiative that emerged from the National Aboriginal
of success. Significantly, the study identified the value
and Torres Strait Islander Education Policy (Whatman,
of the ITAS scheme in building cultural awareness
McLaughlin, Willsteed, Tyhuis, & Beetson, 2008). It was
and understandings of Indigenous perspectives, and
later renamed the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme
enhancing pedagogy among ITAS tutors.
(ITAS). Through successive departmental and political
The underpinning deficit model, the need for greater
changes, the Australian government has continued to
awareness of Indigenous perspectives, and the inclusion
fund ITAS through the Indigenous Education (Targeted
of Indigenous knowledges and pedagogies are echoed in a
Assistance) Act 2000. Initially, measuring success and
critique of Indigenous academic skills support at tertiary
eligibility for funding was based on numbers of student
level by Nakata, Nakata and Chin (2008). They called
completions and graduates linked to ITAS usage. However,
for more research and understanding of the strategies
this did not measure the quality of ITAS; many Indigenous
that successful Indigenous tertiary students develop.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
15
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
With its individual and group student focus, ITAS has the
and that the scheme would in fact be improved through
potential to contribute to this knowledge, but cultural
more ‘holistic/tailored student support activities…more
awareness and training for tutors is needed to deepen
flexible with a reduced administrative burden’ (Scullion,
their understanding and facilitate communication with
2014).This was implemented in the 2016/2017 Budget by
students (Brady, 2012).
combining three existing programs, the Commonwealth
Other research has identified several practices and
Scholarship Program, the Indigenous Support Program
issues associated with the current operation of ITAS
and the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme – Tertiary
such as under-utilisation by students; the scheme’s
Tuition, into one program to ‘improve progression
unavailability to students completing bridging courses
and completion rates for Indigenous higher education
and literacy and numeracy programs; onerous reporting
students’ (Australian Government, 2016). From 2017, the
requirements; and inadequate pay for tutors (Brady, 2012;
Indigenous Student Success Program will continue to
Holt, 2011; Trudgett, 2010). Universities reported that
offer tutorial assistance, with an expectation of student
ITAS inhibits flexibility and innovation (Behrendt, Larkin,
monitoring and progress evaluation.
Griew, & Kelly, 2012). In 2012, the Indigenous Higher Education Review signalled that the scheme was in need
The research project
of review and re-design, as per Recommendation 13 of its final report (Behrendt et al., 2012): Recommendation 13
This research responded to Recommendation 13 of the Indigenous Higher Education Review (Behrendt et al., 2012) and its call for significant reform of the
That the Australian Government reform funding for
operation of ITAS-TT in the Australian university sector.
supplementary Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander
Further, a key finding of a related Office for Learning
support programs, including the Indigenous Sup-
and Teaching funded project, ‘Can’t Be What You Can’t
port Program and the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance
See’: The Transition of Aboriginal and Torres Strait
Scheme – Tertiary Tuition (ITAS–TT), in time for the
Islander Students into Higher Education (Kinnane et
2013 academic year, based on the following design
al., 2014), was that university personnel working in
principles:
Indigenous student support capacities, whilst stressing the value of the scheme, strongly articulated the need
• Allow universities greater flexibility to provide
for changes to ITAS-TT. New directions in the scheme,
locally relevant, tailored support for Aboriginal and
informed by evidence-based research, were needed in
Torres Strait Islander students and staff.
relation to improving ITAS in terms of efficacy regarding
• Target available funding to achieve an improvement in current enrolment levels but also with a greater emphasis on retention and completion rates.
its enunciated outcomes, and its complex and at times restrictive funding arrangements. The research aimed to contribute to the higher
• Ensure that funding would be simple to administer.
education sector’s understanding and knowledge
• Ensure that funding would support clear outcome-
about the level of success and suitability of ITAS from
focussed accountability for universities.
the point of view of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students in regional areas, as well as ITAS tutors and
The new funding model should include consideration
Indigenous Education Unit staff in the institutions
of tutoring support for students who were previously
the students attended. A further motivation for the
ineligible for ITAS–TT assistance (p. 78).
research was to inform the debate and discussion about Indigenous higher education funding generated
The Australian Government appears to have adopted
by the Australian Coalition government’s impending
the terminology used in the review of ITAS funding
but unclear changes to ITAS funding and operational
by Behrendt et al. (2012), and the revision to all
aspects of the scheme.
Indigenous program funding and reformatting ITAS into
The research methodology respected and incorporated
an Indigenous Advancement Strategy (Department of
Australian approaches and methods for Indigenous
the Prime Minister and Cabinet, 2014). Following media
research, and followed institutional ethical guidelines
reports that ITAS was to be disbanded (Hare, 2014), the
(Australian Institute of Aboriginal and Torres Strait
Minister for Indigenous Affairs countered that this was
Islander Studies (AIATSIS), 2012; National Health and
‘scaremongering’ by the opposition Australian Labor Party,
Medical Research Council, 2007).An Indigenous research
16
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
assistant participated in interviews and focus discussion
to the guidelines at the time, ITAS tutoring for postgraduate
groups, contributing cultural acknowledgement and
students was very limited.
cultural safety for the participants. The research had the support and the endorsement of the Indigenous
Student experiences
education centres at both universities. Ethics approval to undertake the research was obtained from both
The vast majority of students had positive views to share
universities. Participants’ identities and contributions
about their ITAS experiences. For many students, the
were kept confidential throughout the research project
tutoring had enabled them to stick with university:
and the data analysis. The research investigated the views and experiences of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students receiving or who had received ITAS tutoring, ITAS tutors, and university personnel in relation to the operation of ITAS in two regional universities in New South Wales. Eighteen students, 15 tutors and four university personnel were interviewed during the period September 2014 to April 2015. We held
It helped me so much and I wouldn’t still be at university without it. (Student) It’s a big relief knowing that it was there I would have dropped out without it. (Student) Without ITAS I wouldn’t have got across the river; not even scraped through; I now understand what empowerment is. (Student)
one-to-one structured interviews at the two universities
Other students articulated the value of ITAS for them
with ITAS coordinators, ITAS tutors, and managers of
in terms of academic skills, subject support and mental
Indigenous Education Units, or similar. The interview
health support:
questions focused on elaborating the perspectives and experiences of ITAS tutors, and the ITAS coordinators
Having a tutor helps to alleviate anxieties. (Student)
in relation to the operations of ITAS, and administrative,
You have a support person. (Student)
reporting and funding procedures (see Appendix A).
I wouldn’t be here without ITAS, it is really good, especially the support after hours, the encouragement. My tutors have challenged me in a good way. They help me to see things I wouldn’t see, they help me to be more positive and not so hard on myself. They are also really good with referencing and other academic skills. (Student)
In the two universities, semi-structured focus group discussions and individual interviews were held with Indigenous students who were receiving tutoring under the ITAS scheme. The focus groups and interviews informed the research about the participants’ individual experiences with ITAS tutoring and, through dialogue and narrative, reveal shared or varying perceptions. Focus discussion group methodology is preferred for Indigenous students because it relates to Indigenous practices and customs of sharing, consultation and collaboration (Stewart, 2007). Questions for students sought their views on the benefits and operation of ITAS, as well as suggestions for improvements (see Appendix A). Focus groups and interviews took place in open, common spaces in the Indigenous education centres in both universities. Initial contact was made with the directors of the
Having a tutor helps me to understand the language that the university uses, and having someone knowledgeable about the ways of learning/writing/academic style etc. Having a tutor helps me to tune into that. It’s about getting feedback, how do I improve? (Student) I would not have passed maths without [my] tutor. Wasn’t focused on maths before I had a tutor and really struggled. I can see myself getting smarter. [The tutor has] taught structure and kept me motivated and stopped me from feeling guilty about not doing work. Great support in areas I struggle in. Keep[s] you focused. A very good place and helps to overcome disadvantage. (Student)
Indigenous education centres who in turn invited ITAS
Thus, the students conveyed a strong message that
Coordinators, ITAS tutors and Indigenous centre personnel
without the assistance (both academic and pastoral) of
to participate in the research. Staff at both centres sent an
their tutors provided through ITAS they may not have
introductory message to students receiving ITAS tutoring
kept going with their university studies.
via the universities’ student email addresses, including the
The tutors broke down barriers for students in their
researcher’s email address should they wish to participate
progress through university studies. In most cases, tutors
in the research. We followed up with students by email
and tutoring spaces provided a haven in the university,
and in person through the Indigenous education centres
especially in the initial stages of the students’ degrees. For
to arrange interviews and discussions. The undergraduate
students, the tutors ‘say things in a way that I understand’,
students’ ages ranged from 18 to mature aged. According
and assist students to ‘decipher’ aspects of university-
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
17
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
speak such as marker feedback. One student stated that
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
ITAS tutors
‘my tutor explains things to me better’. Many Indigenous students are shy and reluctant to speak with lecturers
The tutors interviewed regarded the scheme as an
and course tutors, feeling they need to build relationships
opportunity to bridge a gap that exists in terms of
before they are comfortable in seeking help from the
Indigenous success in higher education, reflecting previous
teaching staff. As a result, unnecessary misunderstandings
research findings about ITAS (Kinnane et al., 2014; Behrendt
and misinterpretations of the requirements of assessments
et al., 2012; Whatman et al., 2008). The tutors, many non-
can persist.
Indigenous, viewed ITAS as breaking down barriers for all involved, increasing and refining the students’ academic
The importance of a ‘place’ Both universities have provided welcoming spaces for students to study individually, to meet with other students, to meet with their tutors, or just to hang out. It was clear from the students’ responses that this was
skills and confidence and their belief in themselves: Creating a space for students to feel safe and comfortable to ask questions. (Tutor) There’s a cultural thing in their classes of not wanting to put themselves forward. (Tutor)
their ‘place’ on campus. They regarded
the
atmosphere
as warm and inviting. Many students how
commented
great
these
on
spaces
were and we saw students
The spaces, and the sense of belonging and community created by, in, and through them was instrumental in the students’ perceptions of their success at university.
receiving tutoring in the areas provided. Staff in the Indigenous Education Units at both universities were located close to the student spaces, were visible to students and easy to access. This factor appeared to be of huge benefit.The spaces, and the sense of belonging and community created by, in, and through them was instrumental in the students’ perceptions of their success at university. The students loved being in these places, as expressed in the following comments: It has good rooms available and using the centre makes things much easier. (Student) Sometimes I just need a hug and (this) is a place I can get one. (Student) [The centre] is so good at supporting our participation in all aspects of university life. They go above and beyond. (Student)
Tutoring helps them to build their confidence in their own work, and it gives them the affirmation they need that they are on the right track. (Tutor)
The biggest obstacle is selfconfidence. My student knows the stuff but she didn’t think she did. The tutoring has built up her confidence. (Tutor) Important especially to help them identify their strengths, it’s not all about their weaknesses, ITAS builds reaffirmation. (Tutor) To raise the standard early, they need more than just Passes in the early years of their degree if they want a high GPA, they need at least Cs in Year 1, and Ds and HDs in subsequent years. (Tutor) Success is about owning the knowledge that you can succeed and do well [but I am] very honest with students about the effort required to do a university degree. (Tutor) The tutors’ comments indicate that through working closely with the students they had gained a deeper understanding and connection to Indigenous Australia,
However, at one university campus, students were
and a deeper understanding of family and community
unhappy with the designated tutoring space, finding it
commitments in the students’ lives. This finding mirrors
‘noisy, cold and uninviting’.
that of Whatman et al. (2008) who identified the value of
The students viewed the availability of food, snacks
ITAS in building cultural awareness and understandings of
and refreshments in the centres combined with
Indigenous perspectives, and enhancing pedagogy among
all-hours access as a very positive affordance. By
ITAS tutors.
providing students with a place where they feel safe and comfortable to learn and can connect with other
Induction, training and payment
Indigenous students, ITAS becomes more beneficial to them. One tutor described the centre as ‘a safe and quiet
However, tutors were critical of some administrative
place to work’ for students.
aspects of ITAS. Some related that they did not receive
18
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
sufficient induction to the university nor to the ITAS
like I’m not connected to anything – the student and I
program (some are from outside the university). The
meet, and that’s kind of it’.
tutors expressed the view that they would appreciate
However, these negotiated relationships are in the main,
receiving cultural awareness training, stressing that
genuine and robust and demonstrate a level of connection
cultural knowledge needs to be refreshed regularly. In
and mutual respect. One tutor commented that her
addition, they would like training and updating in using
students related to her own Indigenous background and
the university online learning management systems. Many
her academic successes provided a role model. But she
tutors mentioned they would appreciate more social
also stressed that she is very honest with students about
get-togethers where tutors, university support staff and
the effort required to do a university degree and the
students could socialise and get to know each other
commitment required on the students’ part:
better, a beneficial outcome for all involved. Some students also suggested similar improvement to the scheme, for example, a camping trip. At one university, tutors made it clear that the processes used to pay them and the attendant paperwork could be improved and streamlined. Currently at this university tutors are paid by completing a paper pay claim form that students have to sign to confirm the claim of the hours worked. Many tutors labelled this process tedious as they had to rely on students to sign off on
Sometimes students themselves don’t value the scheme/us enough – this is a weakness in the valuing of the process, it’s not the students’ money, and they can take it for granted; a lack of respect for the scheme (not showing up; being late; cancelling; going surfing instead) – it’s not a cultural thing, it’s a generational thing. All the onus is on the tutor and not the student, we can ‘dob’ them in if they don’t show up three times in a row and then they lose their tutor, but I don’t. Some students really believe that I’m going to do their work for them! I don’t of course because if I do, they will never own what they need to know. (Tutor)
time during the tutorials to ensure they were paid. This process is also problematic because if students don’t
Tutor/student relationships often go beyond academic
turn up to scheduled tutoring sessions the tutors do not
skills building. A student related ‘the tutors are amazing,
get paid. Students too described this process as a little
they give us much more time than they are being paid
uncomfortable and awkward, and wondered whether
for’. One tutor interviewed was helping a student write a
it might be more appropriate if the paperwork was to
scholarship application in the tutor’s own time during the
be done in another way. Tutors at this university also
university holiday period.
observed the pay scale was considerably less than for the same work at other universities at which they tutor,
Delivery modes
with one reflecting, ‘it’s a sense of feeling less worthy because of the low rates; there should be national equity,
Tutors and students alike noted the flexibility of delivering
I get a lot more (per hour) at other universities’.The low
ITAS as an outstanding strength. We heard examples
pay for ITAS tutors was noted in the review by Behrendt
of tutors and students meeting at each other’s homes,
et al. (2012).
sharing food, and meeting at cafes, in groups, frequently emailing to keep in touch and occasionally Skyping.
Relationships and understandings
Students related that this multi-layered and convivial approach to tutoring aligned well for them within the
Throughout the interviews, it became clear that most
context of an Aboriginal way of being and a collective
student/tutor relationships were based on a type of
approach to learning. Given that many universities deliver
negotiation, partly in response to ‘the vagueness of
a large percentage of their courses online, it is tempting to
guidelines in relation to how we actually do our tutoring’
envisage that ITAS tutoring might move more into online
(mostly a negative), but also arising out of the flexibility
mode accordingly. However, the tutors and students we
of tutoring arrangements (mostly a positive). Students and
interviewed stressed that a key strength of ITAS is that
tutors alike commented on these aspects; one student
in the main tutoring is face-to-face. As one tutor observed
related that ‘there is very little information about what is
‘it’s a cultural thing, a human thing’, and an Indigenous
expected of me/my tutor, for example, how do I know if
education centre administrator remarked: ‘relationships
one of us is not doing the right thing?’ In reference to the
are so important; we need to get people who work
vagueness of the scheme’s guidelines, a tutor remarked:
effectively with Indigenous students’.
‘ITAS works based on student/tutor relationships; (they)
A tutor who was also a third-year student observed that
need to be good and effective. It’s a funny feeling … I feel
it’s ‘good to be able to negotiate meeting times, can work
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
19
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
around when we’re both available’, and another, ‘I tutor
persons (ITAS tutors) having unfettered access to the unit
the student at her house as she has her computer set up
material. Again, more consideration of this proposal may
there. We correspond by Skype and email in between the
be required in this respect.
face to face tutoring sessions if she has questions, and she finds that helpful’.
Widening participation and access
Access to university learning management systems
In terms of availability and ease of access to ITAS, at the time of the research, students in pathways and bridging courses were generally not eligible. Some respondents
At both universities, tutors related it was a struggle, indeed
made a strong case for the extension of ITAS into such
in most cases not possible, to make connections within
courses, with one tutor commenting from personal
the university’s online learning management systems to
experiences in this respect:
help them to become more efficient in supporting the students they tutor. One tutor observed:‘If I had access [I] would be able to show the student around [the learning management site], where things are located, to help them feel more comfortable with the resources’. Not having access to the learning sites meant that they were not able to access course instructions and resources, nor assessment details. Tutors were therefore reliant on
It would be great to see ITAS available for [title deleted] – the university’s pathways program. [This program] was for me a steep learning curve, and is especially so for people who have been out of school for a while. It gives them a very solid grounding for coping with Year 1. It builds an important level of confidence. Confidence is a big issue for Indigenous students, to know that university is not out of their reach; it gets university as a feasible option in their minds early. (Tutor)
students for these materials and often valuable time was
On the other hand, postgraduate students were entitled
wasted chasing them up. Providing ITAS tutors with direct
only to a reduced amount of tutoring based on an
access to the learning sites would ensure that the tutors
assessment as to how ‘different’ their postgraduate course
could work to their best ability to support students more
is from their undergraduate course. This also seems
efficiently, and they could also keep up to date in changes
counterproductive, considering the demanding nature of
in course content. One tutor related how helpful it would
their studies, especially if the students have had consistent
be if tutors could borrow textbooks on extended loan from
tutoring throughout the duration of their undergraduate
the library: ‘textbooks are very expensive and there are
studies. That ITAS is currently not generally available
always new editions, and are only available on short term
to postgraduate students was viewed as a significant
loan’.A student suggested it could be useful for ITAS tutors
limitation and a resounding negative at both universities,
to access the online tutor links (hidden to students) within
and was reflected in the Behrendt review (2012).
the learning management systems. In this way, the ITAS
Most tutors contended that two hours per unit per
tutors could be party to the general exchanges between
week wasn’t enough to effectively cover all the material
tutors regarding resources, teaching ideas and overall
requiring coverage over a teaching session. This is
student progress during the delivery of the unit of work.
especially the case around assessment time or if the
Students and tutors alike highlighted the absence of
tutoring starts a few weeks after the teaching session has
collaboration between ITAS tutors and the mainstream
begun, which is frequently the case, leaving several topics
course teaching staff, observing this had the potential
to catch up on. It was felt there was insufficient flexibility
to exert a negative impact on the quality and efficiency
in the scheme for students who have used their two hours
of tutoring provided. This was an opinion frequently
and genuinely need more.
expressed, and it is reflected in the following student’s comments: ‘It would be good if there was more communication between the tutors and the UAs [Unit Assessors], they could see when assessments are due. I have to write all these things down for my (ITAS) tutor’. However, on a cautionary note, if ITAS tutor access to
One tutor suggested allowing for a few more hours per week: …optimally 3 – 4 hours per week per unit … you don’t have to claim for it if you don’t use it, it would just be good to have the flexibility for more if needed. (Tutor)
the learning management sites resulted in inadvertent
Another commented:
identification of the student, and this was not the student’s
…students shouldn’t have to apply for extra hours. Would be good if tutors could make recommendations/assessments on higher needs students. (Tutor)
wish, further thinking may be needed. Additionally, unit coordinators may feel uncomfortable about ‘outside’
20
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
And another:
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
In an effort to address the kaleidoscope of information
…often students don’t realise that they need ITAS until half way through semester... if they need thirty hours at that point, they should get it. (Tutor)
that comes at students, one university in this research has recently inserted a sentence near the ‘tick-a-box’ relating to Australian Aboriginal/Torres Strait Islander selfidentification on the enrolment form. The purpose of this
Timing
extra sentence is to let students know their university has an Indigenous support centre, and asks the students if
From the perspective of many students there is
they would like to know more about its activities.
considerable room for improvement in terms of timeliness and availability of the scheme. Students
Looking forward
expressed a need to be matched with a tutor as soon as possible in the teaching session, and a number
Tutors and students shared insights into improvements to
mentioned that they had not started with the tutoring
the operation of ITAS, or the design of its successor(s):
until well into the session, for example, ‘It was a bit late; I’d already done some assessments’. Other students weren’t aware the scheme existed for the first part of their time at university:‘I didn’t find out about it until my second year’. Ensuring students are made aware of ITAS at class registration or during the official orientation period would enable them to have the greatest chance of being effectively supported at university from the time of their commencement. There was also concern expressed amongst tutors with the timeframe in which they receive their contracts, with some stating they often ‘start off behind the eight-ball’ due to not receiving contracts until Week 4 of the teaching period: ‘It takes two weeks to get my contracts done, can be half way through session by then, and then there’s a lot of pressure on the tutors too, not just the students, when they have lots to do’. As one tutor put it, the lag time in contracting tutors: …can be too late for students who are already struggling with their first assignment. By Week 4 there is quite a lot to catch up on. It would be much better if we could get an early jump on it, it’s important for them [students] to get familiar early with everything else they have to do in Year 1. (Tutor) Again this might be avoided by promoting ITAS more broadly to students prior to the commencement of their studies in any study period so that the student/tutor matching can be done as early as possible enabling the tutoring to get underway promptly in the teaching session. Universities are well known for sending many emails to students (ask the nearest student!), and students can be overwhelmed by the email volume. Students, especially in the early days of their degrees, experience a lot of ‘noise’ about all the things going on. Because of this noise, they may disregard the emails – as important as they are – about ITAS support and the general support provided to them by their university’s Indigenous unit. vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
I would like to see greater guidance with respect to the best outcomes for tutors and students, outcomes which you would expect to be mutually beneficial. (Tutor) There is not enough voice in ITAS for students or tutors. This is the first time I’ve never been asked for my views about ITAS and I’ve been tutoring for three years. (Tutor) Testimonies from previous students could be put up around the Indigenous Education Unit to impart to new students to encourage them to utilise ITAS. (Tutor) We need an integrated online system for all the paperwork, we use online systems in everything else at university why not ITAS? Tutors are sometimes discouraged as they are not paid until the students sign the paperwork and this can take a while and a lot of chasing up. An email from the student saying they have attended the session could proxy as a signature. (Tutor) Multi-level styles of tutoring, i.e. instead of just one on one, have a multi-level approach to how people learn; we learn in groups; by discussion; Aboriginal people are a collective system, it’s what we do. (Student) Making the program more widely known, letting them know it’s a good thing to do, do it, and feel good about it, and to not feel that it’s a sign of weakness to use ITAS and other things such as academic skills programs. (Tutor) I was doubtful about my tutor’s qualifications, wasn’t sure how qualified they were, and started disengaging from her. I found her to be negative, therefore this is one of the weaknesses, it would be good to have reassurance about who they are, what their qualifications are etc. More transparency. (Student) ITAS should target high achieving students in the latter years of a course as potential tutors, collaborations between lecturers etc., ITAS should ask lecturers to nominate students who would make good tutors. An
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
21
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
improved ITAS could work to hook students back onto campus. (Student).
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Acknowledgements This research was undertaken with the assistance of a
What does success look like?
Southern Cross University School of Education small research grant.
One question we asked tutors was what success looks like in the context of ITAS:
Judith Wilks is an Adjunct Associate Professor with both the
If we get a student/tutor match that works, and the relationship becomes good, a lot of success can come from this – unit of work completion and degree completion are the ultimate measures of success.
School of Education at Southern Cross University and the
If you take ITAS away, Indigenous completion rates will go down and we will go backwards; for all the good jobs you have to have a degree.
education services delivery, and increasingly specialist
ITAS tutoring helps students to stay on scholarships, and if they can keep their scholarship they’re more likely to stay at university. If not, they would have to go home and study from there, and their chances of completion would not be as good.
Contact: Judith.Wilks@scu.edu.au
Nulungu Research Institute at the University of Notre Dame. She is an experienced educator with a significant research, teaching and community engagement track record in regional research skills in the area of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander participation and success in higher education.
Ellen Fleeton is a proud Aboriginal woman who is currently living, working and studying a Bachelor of Education in Coffs Harbour (Gumbaynggirr Country), NSW.
Finally, one tutor summed up the sentiments of many: Tomorrow I’m attending the graduation of an Aboriginal woman who had many difficulties facing her – that’s success!
Katie Wilson’s (Te Atiawa) research areas are Indigenous students’ school education and their transition to higher education, and post-qualitative methodologies. She is currently providing strategic research and publication advice
Conclusion
and support at Victoria University of Wellington Library.
Evidence from this research shows that at both regional
References
universities in which the study was conducted, ITAS has been a vital means of assisting Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students to achieve their academic goals. The scheme’s operation was viewed by students and tutors alike as extremely beneficial and a very positive influence on the students’ experiences of university. Partnering Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander university students with a tutor throughout their undergraduate studies (and in some cases, their postgraduate studies) is assisting students to negotiate the visible and invisible hurdles encountered during their journey through university studies. However, we also found that from an administrative and efficiency perspective some improvements could be implemented. ITAS has been invaluable for Indigenous students who feel overwhelmed by the university machine and culture, or lacking in confidence. It has provided a bridge and strengthened their university journey. This research demonstrates the ongoing value of ITAS, and we hope recently introduced changes to the scheme and future arrangements will address shortcomings whilst maintaining strengths.
22
Australian Government. (2016). Budget paper no. 2: Budget Measures 201617. Commonwealth of Australia: Canberra, Australia. Retrieved from http://www. budget.gov.au/2016-17/content/bp2/html/bp2_expense-20.htm Australian Institute of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Studies. (2012). Guidelines for Ethical Research in Australian Indigenous Studies. Retrieved from http://www.aiatsis.gov.au/research/docs/GERAIS.pdf Behrendt, L., Larkin, S., Griew, R., & Kelly, P. (2012). Review of higher education access and outcomes for Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander people: Final report. Retrieved from https://education.gov.au/review-highereducation-access-and-outcomes-aboriginal-and-torres-strait-islander-people Brady, W. (2012). Indigenous student support in Australian universities. Retrieved from https://docs.education.gov.au/documents/indigenous-studentsupport-australian-universities Department of the Prime Minister and Cabinet. (2014). Indigenous Advancement Strategy. Retrieved from http://www.dpmc.gov.au/indigenousaffairs/about/indigenous-advancement-strategy Hare, J. (2014, September 5). Key Indigenous tuition program disbanded. The Australian. Retrieved from http://www.theaustralian.com.au/higher-education/ key-indigenous-tuition-program-disbanded/story-e6frgcjx-1227048080456 Holt, L. (2011). Submission to the Review of Higher Education Access and Outcomes for Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander people [by NSW/ACT Higher Education Network Aboriginal Corporation]. Retrieved from https://docs. education.gov.au/documents/nswact-higher-education-network-aboriginalcorporation Kinnane, S., Wilks, J., Wilson, K., Hughes, T., & Thomas, S. (2014). ‘Can’t be what you can’t see’: The transition of Aboriginal and Torres Strait
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Islander students into higher education. Retrieved from http://www.olt.gov. au/project-transition-aboriginal-and-torres-strait-islander-students-highereducation-2011-0 Liddle, C. (2014, 8 October). Changes to funding arrangements for the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme (ITAS). Retrieved from http://www.nteu. org.au/article/Changes-to-funding-arrangements-for-the-Indigenous-TutorialAssistance-Scheme-ITAS-16942 Nakata, M., Nakata, V., & Chin, M. (2008). Approaches to the academic preparation and support of Australian Indigenous students for tertiary studies Australian Journal of Indigenous Education, 37, 137-145. National Health and Medical Research Council. (2007). National statement on ethical conduct in human research. Retrieved from http://www.nhmrc.gov. au/_files_nhmrc/file/publications/synopses/e72-jul09.pdf Patton, W., Lee Hong, A., Lampert, J., Burnett, B., & Anderson, J. (2012). Report into the retention and graduation of Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander students enrolled in initial teacher education. Adelaide, Australia: More Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Teachers Initiative, University of South Australia. Scullion, N. (2014). Indigenous tutorial support more flexible under Indigenous Advancement Strategy. Retrieved from http://minister.indigenous. gov.au/media/2014-09-11/indigenous-tutorial-support-more-flexible-underindigenous-advancement-strategy Stewart, J. (2007). Grounded theory and focus groups: Reconciling nethodologies in Indigenous Australian education research. Australian Journal of Indigenous Education, 36, 32-37. Trudgett, M. (2010). Supporting the learning needs of Indigenous Australians in higher education: How can they be best achieved? The International Journal of Learning, 17(3), 351-361. Whatman, S., McLaughlin, J., Willsteed, S., Tyhuis, A., & Beetson, S. (2008). Quality and efficacy of the Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme (ITAS) for university students. Australian Journal of Indigenous Education, 37, 118-130.
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Appendix A: Questions for participants Questions for ITAS Tutors and Indigenous Education Unit management personnel: 1. In your view, what are the strengths of the ITAS scheme? 2. How would you define success in the ITAS scheme? 3. How do you feel about the administration and funding arrangements of the scheme? 4. Do you have any comments you would like to make concerning the availability of ITAS in terms of eligibility guidelines (e.g. students undertaking bridging courses including literacy and numeracy programs, and also postgraduate students?) 5. W hat are your views on the availability and timeliness of tutoring arrangements for students throughout their study at uni? 6. What are your views on things such as the flexibility and scope of the scheme overall? 7. What do you feel are specific issues strengths/ weaknesses of the scheme for a) students, b) tutors, and c) administrators of the ITAS scheme? 8. What things could be done to strengthen the future operation of ITAS? Questions for students receiving ITAS tutoring: 1. In what ways has having an ITAS tutor been beneficial to your study? 2. What are your views on the availability and getting access to ITAS tutoring at times that are suitable for students? 3. In your view does the ITAS scheme have any particular strengths or weaknesses? 4. Can you suggest changes to the scheme that you think would be beneficial to students?
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Indigenous Tutorial Assistance Scheme Judith Wilks, Ellen Radnidge Fleeton & Katie Wilson
23
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Collaboration in the Humanities, Arts and Social Sciences in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson Curtin University
This paper reports on the first large-scale quantitative investigation into collaboration, demonstrated in co-authorship, by Australian humanities, arts and social sciences (HASS) researchers. Web of Science data were extracted for Australian HASS publications, with a focus on the softer social sciences, over the period 2004 – 2013. The findings show that collaboration has increased over the last ten years, with strong intra-region collaboration concentrated on the east coast of Australia. International collaboration occurred most frequently with English speaking countries at vast distances from Australia. On average, fields in the social sciences collaborated at higher rates and attracted higher citations than humanities fields, but co-authorship of any kind was likely to increase citation rates. The results provide a snapshot of collaboration by Australian HASS authors in this time period and can be used as a benchmark to explore collaboration patterns in the future. Keywords: HASS, humanities, social sciences, collaboration, Web of Science
Introduction
by different HASS fields. As a purely quantitative study, the research used co-authorship as a proxy for collaboration,
A report into the humanities, arts and social sciences
thereby presenting a subset of the full range of activities
in Australia stated: ‘In an era when collaboration is
that may occur in research collaboration.
encouraged by institutions and by funding mechanisms,
There are a number of reasons why collaboration
the pattern of collaboration is becoming an important
is encouraged, including to share expertise and the
consideration’ (Turner & Brass, 2014, p. 69). This paper
costs associated with research, and to boost research
seeks to explore aspects of collaboration in specific
productivity and scholarly impact (Beaver, 2001; Katz
humanities, arts and social sciences (HASS) fields in order
& Martin, 1997). For researchers in the sciences, the
to identify the extent of collaboration, the countries
need for large-scale facilities can be a strong driver for
Australian HASS authors are collaborating with, and to
collaboration. This has previously been seen as less
test whether collaboration is associated with higher
relevant for HASS researchers as they generally do not have
impact as reflected in citations. It considers both national
the same requirements for costly equipment and research
and international collaboration to gain an insight into
facilities. On the other hand, sharing skills and expertise,
collaboration patterns by different Australian regions and
‘intellectual companionship’, and the potential for higher
24
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
visibility of research are common to all disciplines (Katz
education, economics and management tend to collaborate
& Martin, 1997, p. 15). For research funders, policy-makers
at higher rates than other social sciences (Abramo et al.,
and institutions, increases in productivity and impact
2014; Larivière, Gingras & Archambault, 2006), and within
contribute to improved performance in world university
the humanities fields collaboration in history is the
rankings and the pressure to collaborate, particularly
strongest – the researchers qualifying their findings with:
with international partners, from funding agencies and
‘in the humanities and literature, formal collaboration based
institutions is applied across the disciplines.
on co-authorship is a marginal phenomenon’ (Larivière,
The research reported in this paper is the first large-scale
Gingras & Archambault, 2006, p. 531).
quantitative study of research collaboration, represented
The motivation and pressure to collaborate are given
by co-authorship, by HASS researchers in Australia. Using
impetus by research that suggests ‘internationally
data from the Thomson Reuters Web of Science database,
co-authored papers are cited up to twice as frequently as
the research findings are a valuable source of information
single-country papers’ (Katz & Martin, 1997, p. 6). Moed
about Australian HASS collaboration patterns over the
(2005) sought to determine why citation rates tend to
past ten years and establish a benchmark from which
increase with collaboration and found that citation impact
future collaboration trends can be measured.
varied depending upon the number and combination of countries involved in a co-publication. The widespread
Background
perception that citations increase with collaboration was also tested by Luukkonen, Persson and Sivertsen
The use of co-authorship as a proxy for measuring
(1992), who found less developed countries sought to
collaboration is an established, if imperfect, method to
collaborate with developed countries. Physical proximity
explore patterns and trends in research collaboration
(Hoekman et al., 2010; Katz, 1994; Katz & Martin, 1997;
(Glänzel & Schubert, 2005). It is imperfect because
Larivière, Gingras & Archambault, 2006; Luukkonen et
co-authorship
of
al., 1992), length of experience, experience in a number
collaboration that occur between researchers, such
of workplaces (van Rijnsoever & Hessels, 2011, p. 469),
as research supervision activities, access to research
and ‘social distance’ (Katz & Martin, 1997, p.5) can also
equipment and informal sharing of research data (Katz &
influence collaboration rates. Hoekman, Frenken and
Martin, 1997; Laudel, 2002). Co-authorship captures only
Tijssen’s (2010, p. 667) research into physical proximity
the formal published outputs of research by two or more
and language as factors influencing collaboration in
authors, using data that are commonly collected from
Europe found that, on average, the share of within-
established indexing sources such as Web of Science.
country co-authored publications in social sciences and
When examining HASS fields, the nature of scholarly
humanities was 90 and 97 per cent (of all co-authored
communication and coverage of the databases used to
publications), respectively: the highest proportion of
gather data introduces additional factors that influence
national collaboration across all fields. The authors also
results. For example, a substantial proportion of the
found that ‘lingual area’, that is regions with a common
research outputs by HASS researchers – books, book
language, was strongly associated with co-authorship for
chapters and creative works – are not indexed by the
social sciences (93 per cent) and humanities (97 per cent)
databases to the same extent (if at all) as journal articles
publications.
does
not
capture
other
forms
(Hicks, 1999, 2005; Moed, 2005; Universities UK, 2008). Despite
the
HASS
internationally (Beaver, 2001; Ossenblok, et al., 2014;
collaboration using co-authorship as a proxy has attracted
Wuchty et al., 2007) and Australia is the second highest
increasing attention over the last two decades and the
publisher in the Asia-Pacific region, with a substantial
findings of the research can be summarised as follows:
proportion (40 per cent) of international collaboration
social sciences authors collaborate at lower rates than
(Haustein et al., 2011, p. 736). According to a UK report,
authors from science fields, but more than authors from
Australia experienced an average growth in international
humanities fields (Abramo et al., 2014; Bordons & Gómez,
collaboration of 162 per cent between 1996 and 2005
2000; Endersby, 1996; Gossart & Oezman, 2009; Larivière,
(Universities UK, 2008). Biglia and Butler (2009) and the
Gingras & Archambault., 2006; Ma et al., 2014; Marshakova-
Office of Chief Scientist (2012) reported a similar growth
Shaikevich, 2006; Nikzad et al., 2011; Ossenblok et al.,
rate of collaboration, however only science fields were
2014; Puuska et al., 2014; Stefaniak, 2001). Focusing on
included in the 2012 report and field analysis was not
international collaboration, the fields of psychology,
presented in the 2009 study.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
acknowledged
limitations,
There has been an increase in co-authored papers,
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
25
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Several studies have examined collaboration by HASS
The research does not claim to be representative of
fields in Australia, including a study of international
all collaboration activity that occurs in Australian HASS.
collaboration by Larivière, Gingras and Archambault
It cannot due to the fields selected for examination,
(2006, p. 527). This research found Australian social
the acknowledged limitations of using co-authorship
sciences and humanities fields collaborating at 20.3 per
as a proxy for collaboration, the nature of scholarly
cent and 5.6 per cent, respectively, over the period 1998
communication in HASS, and database coverage – which
– 2002. Focusing on the Australian educational research
is biased towards the large English-speaking publishing
workforce, Bennett et al. (2013, p. 487) reported 67.6
nations in North America and Europe. However, the
per cent of their sample (504 education academics) was
results can be examined against existing international
involved in ‘active collaborations’ and 49.4 per cent had
quantitative studies of HASS collaboration, particularly in
engaged in international collaborations (this was not
relation to the influence of proximity and language. It also
limited to co-authorship). Collaboration with partners
affords closer attention to the selected HASS fields.
from English-language speaking countries formed the collaborations were with collaborators in Asia. Noting
An overview of the Australian HASS environment
the limitations to using co-authorship to measure
Across the Australian higher education sector there are
collaboration in HASS, Turner and Brass (2014) drew on
approximately 17,840 full-time equivalent research staff
data from national competitive grant applications and
associated with HASS, as defined in the Turner and Brass
Australia’s 2010 and 2012 national research assessment
(2014) report. This number accounts for 42.7 per cent
exercises (Excellence in Research for Australia, ERA)
of all research academics in the 39 universities. HASS
to gauge the extent of collaboration in HASS fields. The
includes fields ranging from the strongly scientific (such
report’s findings echo those of Bennett et al. (2013), with
as some areas of psychology) and mathematical (as in
Europe (primarily the United Kingdom) providing the
economics), to performance and art. HASS is an unwieldy
largest group of international collaborators (56 per cent),
grouping that is difficult to define, and research and
followed by North America (27 per cent), and 10 per cent
publication practices vary enormously across it. While
Asian collaborators. Like previous international studies
HASS fields are found in all Australian universities, their
(Abramo et al., 2014; Larivière, Gingras, & Archambault,
place in faculty, college and school structures differ.
2006; Ma et al., 2014; Ossenblok et al., 2014), Turner and
For example, the majority of universities (64 per cent)
Brass (2014, p. 71) found that psychology, education and
locate psychology with science faculties and schools
management fields had the highest rates of collaboration,
in their organisational structure, while economics and
at a national level, in HASS.
law are commonly located in schools of business or
majority of collaborations, while only a quarter of the
This study of Australian HASS fields gathered benchmark
management.
data about collaboration activity by researchers as
There are also differences in the methods applied to
reflected in co-authored publications indexed by the
assess HASS research in Australia by the Excellence in
Web of Science database. It focussed on humanities
Research for Australia (ERA). While research outputs in
and the ‘softer’ social sciences fields, which tend to be
‘Psychology and Cognitive Sciences’are assessed by citation
overshadowed in bibliometric analyses by large fields
analysis, other social sciences are assessed through peer
such as psychology and economics (with scholarly
review Furthermore, the humanities, arts and most social
communication practices often more akin to sciences).
sciences fields are co-located under a number of divisions
The research sought to answer the following research
in the research classification scheme (the Australian and
questions in relation to these Australian HASS fields over a
New Zealand Standard Research Classification (ANZSRC),
ten-year period, 2004 – 2013:
(Australian Bureau of Statistics, 2008)) used in the ERA.
1. Which publication types and how many are produced
‘Psychology and Cognitive Sciences’, ‘Economics’, and
through national and international collaborations?
‘Law’ stand alone in their own divisions. For all HASS
2. What are the citation rates for national and
fields, the research classification is applied to research
international collaborations, and for which fields?
outputs, with journal articles automatically assigned the
3. Are proximity and language associated with higher
Field of Research (FoR) codes specified in the approved
national and international collaboration? 4. Which fields are involved in higher rates of national and international collaboration?
26
ERA Journal List (Australian Research Council, 2012). At the time of writing the revised journal list for ERA 2015 had not been made available to the public.
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Methods
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
p. 329) reported Web of Science coverage of Australian university publications in psychology journals was 73 per
As a purely quantitative examination of HASS collaboration
cent compared with less than 50 per cent for other HASS
in Australia, the research drew on publications data from
fields. By limiting the research to the humanities, arts and
the Web of Science database.This source was selected due
softer social sciences in this study, the research was able
to the database’s advanced search functions that allow
to closely examine fields that are often lost amongst the
refinement and identification of specific subject fields.
findings for HASS more broadly.
The search for relevant publications was limited to the
The full records for the retrieved items were downloaded
Social Sciences Citation Index (SSCI), Arts & Humanities
into an Excel spreadsheet. In their original form, the data
Citation Index (A&HCI), Conference Proceedings Citation
included concatenated fields and inconsistent naming
Index-Social Science & Humanities (CPCI-SSH), and the
rules which required extensive cleansing to identify
Book Citation Index–Social Sciences & Humanities (BKCI-
collaborating authors, institutions, regions and countries.
SSH), with a publication year between 2004 and 2013.This
A Perl script was used to parse the raw data to extract,
period was selected to provide some indication of change
group and codify data of interest and to reformat so that
across ten years. It also incorporates the years before the
the data could be imported into JMP11 (2014) and IBM
ERA was introduced (prior to 2010) and several publishing
SPSS Statistics (2013) to conduct frequency analyses.
years subsequently. ‘Australia’ was used in the address field
The data were analysed using descriptive statistics
to limit results to publications with at least one author
functions of Excel and IBM SPSS Statistics. To enable field
affiliated with an Australian institution. In order to focus
of research (subject) analysis, the FoR codes assigned to
on the humanities, arts and softer social sciences fields, the
journals in the ERA (Australian Research Council, 2012)
subject search applied the strategy: (SU = Archaeology OR
were recorded against journals in the spreadsheet and the
Architecture OR Art OR Arts & Humanities Other Topics
‘research areas’ terms assigned to individual records by
OR Asian Studies OR Classics OR Dance OR Film, Radio &
Web of Science were also included.
Television OR History OR History & Philosophy of Science
Citations data are reported as means and at the citation
OR Literature OR Music OR Philosophy OR Religion OR
level of the 75th percentile in the analysis of authorship
Theatre OR Communication OR Cultural Studies OR
categories and research areas. The 75th percentile was
Demography OR Education & Educational Research
chosen as the cut-off level, as performed by Levitt and
OR Ethnic Studies OR Family Studies OR Geography OR
Thelwall (2010) in their analysis of economics literature
Linguistics OR Social Issues OR Social Sciences Other
and after testing the higher 90th percentile cut-off level.
Topics OR Social Work OR Sociology OR Urban Studies
ArcGIS software was used to create visual representations
OR Women’s Studies). The results were refined to exclude
of the density of collaborating countries.
publications indexed with science-related Research Area
The main subsets of data examined were the authorship
terms. Only the document types ‘article’,‘book chapter’ and
categories: sole-authored; national
co-authored; and
‘book’ were included in the final data set for analysis. All
international co-authored (IC) publications. If a publication
records indexed as ‘proceedings papers’ in the results were
had two or more authors and all were affiliated with
in fact journal publications, and therefore this document
Australian institutions, it was classed as a national
type did not feature in the analysis. A total of 21,217
collaboration. Publications with at least one international
publication records comprised the data for analysis.
co-author were categorised as international collaborations.
Although psychology, economics and law are associated with HASS, these fields were not included in the study.
Results
Previous research in Australia and internationally indicates that psychology, and to a lesser extent economics and law,
From the total 21,217 publication records, 12,964 (61.1
are closer to science fields in scholarly communication
per cent) were sole-authored, 5,526 (26.1 per cent) were
practices and coverage by Web of Science. In relation to
national co-authored, and 2,727 (12.8 per cent) were
scholarly communication, a comparison of referencing
IC. In contrast to earlier studies of science fields (Biglia
practices (Larivière,, Archambault, Gingras, & Vignola-
& Butler, 2009; Haustein et al., 2011; Office of the Chief
Gagnè, 2006) found that journal literature makes up
Scientist, 2012), the international collaboration of these
over 50 per cent of the share of references in the fields
HASS publications occurs at much lower rates. The set
of psychology, economics and law, while all other HASS
was comprised of 15,228 (71.7 per cent) articles, 5,981
fields are substantially below that. Butler and Visser (2006,
(28.2 per cent) book chapters, and eight books.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
27
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
Table 1: Publication types by authorship categories SA n Articles
NC %
n
8973
58.9
n 4301
28.2
Total %
1954
E
V
I
E
categories
W was
examined. For example, under 6
n
12.8
15228
12.9
5981
25.0
8
per
cent
co-authored
of
international
publications
in
the dataset were published in
(%)
(69.21)
Book chapters n
3986
(%)
(30.75)
n
5
(%)
(0.04)
(0.02)
(0.07)
co-authored publications in 2010,
n
12964
5526
2727
followed by a rise and steadying
Books
Total
(77.83)
n
R
authorship
IC %
’
66.6
1224
(71.65) 20.5
(22.15) 62.5
1
771
2007, rising to over 12 per cent in 2009. Figure 1 presents the
(28.27) 12.5
findings, which show a decline
2
in the number of international
off in 2011 and 2012. The trend
Note: SA – sole-authored; NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored
lines
Publications, publication year and citations
indicate
international
co-authored publications have
The types of publications produced by each authorship
increased at higher rates than national co-authored, with
category were analysed to explore whether differences
sole-authored publications growing at the lowest rate
existed between sole-authored, national co-authored
across the period.
and international co-authored outputs (see Table 1).
The mean number of citations per publication was
The results for journal articles and book chapters differ
calculated for the three authorship categories and for the
across the authorship types, with sole authors producing
different publication types. Across the full data set the
the majority of all publication types. The proportion of
mean citation rate was 2.27; journal articles had an average
articles is slightly higher than book chapters for national
citation rate of 2.94, and chapters were cited 0.55 times
co-authored publications, but there is no difference
on average. The book publications had the highest mean
between these publication types for international
citation rate at 4, but this finding is unreliable due to the
co-authored publications. The number of books (8 in
very low number of books (eight). The highest number
total) in the data set is too small to achieve reliable results
of citations to a single publication in the authorship
relating to books specifically, however, book publications
categories was 208 for a 2006 international co-authored
were included in analyses of Research Areas.
publication, 196 for a 2007 national co-authored
To determine whether a trend in publication outputs emerged over the period studied, the publications (per cent of total set) produced each year by the different
publication, and 122 for a 2004 sole-authored publication: all journal articles. Citation rates across the full data set were also calculated
Percentage of publications in authorship category
18
SA
16
NC
14
IC
10
publication: sole-authored was
1.64;
national
co-authored was 3.02: and was 3.75 citations. As a comparison, a calculation
8
Linear (SA)
6
Linear (NC)
4 2 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 2009 2010 2011 2012 2013 Year of publication
Linear (IC)
Figure 1: Publications by authorship categories and year of publication Note: SA – sole-authored; NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored
28
the
international co-authored
12
0
for
authorship categories. Per
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
of the 75th percentile was used as a cut-off to compare citation levels across
the
authorship These
different categories.
calculations
for
book publications are not included as a separate row in Table 2 because the low number of books is likely to
produce
unreliable
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 2: Mean citations and citation level of the 75th percentile for publication types by authorship categories
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
states with the highest national co-authored collaboration were also the highest collaborators on international co-authored publications, with 31.4 per cent, 24.6 per
SA
NC
IC
All publications
(n=12964)
(n=5526)
(n=2727)
Mean citations
1.64
3.02
3.75
states/territories, the affiliations of national co-authored
Citation level at 75th percentile
1
3
4
publications were analysed by disaggregating the affiliation
Journal articles
(n=8973)
(n=4301)
(n=1954)
the one-to-one collaborations across Australia. Overall,
Mean citations
2.16
3.73
4.94
intra-state/territory collaboration occurred at higher rates
Citation level at 75th percentile
2
4
6
Book chapters
(n=3986)
(n=1224)
(n=771)
Mean citations
0.47
0.52
0.72
Citation level at 75th percentile
0
0
1
cent, and 20 per cent respectively. To explore the extent of collaboration between
data for each national co-authored publication to identify
than inter-state/territory collaboration. Only Tasmania and the Northern Territory had higher rates for interstate collaboration. The highest intra-state collaboration was by authors affiliated with NSW (3,749), followed by Victoria and Queensland (3,208 and 2,700, respectively). The highest inter-state/territory collaboration occurred between NSW and Victoria (480),Victoria and Queensland
Note: SA – sole-authored; NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored
(284), NSW and Queensland (274), and Victoria and the
data. The results indicate that publishing with co-authors,
numbered 148 or less.
ACT (204). The other inter-state/territory collaborations
either at national or international levels, will advantage Australian authors in terms of potential to attract citations,
Collaborating countries
and that journal articles are likely to attract higher
In total, 101 different countries were represented in the
numbers of citations than book chapters.
international co-authored publication set. Across it, there
Authors, affiliations and national collaboration
were 4,903 international co-authors on 2,727 publications. This count was derived from counting the number of
The average number of publications per collaborating
international co-authors regardless of country affiliation;
author in the full data set was 1.46. The number of
for example, a publication with two authors from the US,
co-authors
publications
two from England, and one from China was counted as
ranged from 2–14, with an average of 2.63 authors per
on
national
co-authored
five. Two analyses were performed on the international
publication. International co-authors ranged from 2–20,
co-authored publications data to determine the number
with an average of 3.18 authors per publication. In the
of publications by a collaborating country (for example,
national co-authored publication set, 2,284 authors had
if one or more co-authors on a publication was from the
collaborated on two or more publications, while less than
United States then this was counted as one instance) and
half that number (1,002) of authors had collaborated
by the number of authors from a collaborating country
on two or more international co-authored publications.
across the whole international co-authored set. The top
Across both collaboration types only 93 authors (0.58 per
five most frequently collaborating countries are presented
cent) had co-authored more than 10 publications. Two
in Table 3.
Australian authors affiliated with the field of linguistics
With the exception of China, the highest collaborating
were the most frequent collaborators across the national
countries share the same language with Australia.
co-authored and international co-authored publications
There was a substantial decrease to the sixth highest
sets (140 and 111 publications, respectively), 111 of
collaborating country: 100 publications had a co-author
which were co-authored with each other.
affiliated with Singapore; and Singapore and the
The data were analysed to determine the extent to which
Netherlands were each represented by 153 authors on
Australian states/territories engaged in co-authorship. New
international co-authored publications. Some of Australia’s
South Wales (NSW),Victoria, and Queensland collaborated
nearest neighbours (Indonesia, Malaysia, Philippines,
on 36.6 per cent, 29.2 per cent and 24.7 per cent of
Cambodia,Thailand, Brunei and Laos) collaborated on 134
national co-authored publications respectively, while the
publications in total. ArcGIS mapping software was used
other states and territories were collaborators on less
to illustrate the density (in raw numbers) of international
than 10 per cent of national co-authored publications.The
co-authors by country affiliation, seen in Figure 2.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
29
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 3: Top five collaborating countries by publications and authors Collaborating country by publications n
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 4. Education is strongly represented in the national co-authored set, while the international co-authored
Collaborating country by authors %
E
journals have a slightly broader subject representation.The findings that only 18 titles in the national co-authored set
n
%
had 50 or more articles and only 10 titles in the international
England
646
23.7 USA
995
20.3
co-authored set were responsible for 20 or more articles
USA
613
22.5 England
957
19.5
indicate a ‘long tail’ of journals in which very few Australian
NZ
280
10.3 NZ
382
7.8
China
234
8.6 China
332
6.8
Canada
209
7.7 Canada
308
6.3
HASS fields: Collaboration and citations
HASS authors publish. The FoR codes assigned to journals for the ERA were recorded against all journals with five or more articles in the national co-authored and international co-authored sets. The frequency of FoR codes in the sets was analysed after the codes were proportionally distributed at the
Differences between subject fields can be analysed in a
two digit level. Proportional distribution of the FoR codes
number of ways, including the terms assigned to records
was undertaken to account for the varying number of
by a database, the journals in which articles are published,
codes assigned to journals. For example, Geographical
or through more formalised research classification like
Research is assigned the single Multidisciplinary FoR
Fields of Research codes, as in the ERA. Each of these
code and therefore each of its articles was counted as
methods was used to examine the publications in the
one multi-disciplinary code in the analysis. The Journal
co-authored data sets. The sole-authored publications
of Social Issues is assigned two FoR codes and half the
were included in some analyses for comparative purposes.
number of articles were distributed to each code. For a
It is problematic, however, to compare the findings from
journal that is assigned three FoR codes, such as Australian
these various approaches due to differences in how a
Feminist Studies, a third of the articles were distributed
subject is assigned or interpreted. For example, journal
to each code.The total number of articles included in this
titles rarely describe their full content, assignment of
analysis was 3,532 for national co-authored (82 per cent
Fields of Research codes were somewhat haphazard
of the total number of national co-authored articles) and
(Haddow, 2015), and databases index at article level using
1154 articles in the international co-authored set (59 per
their own set of terms.
cent of the total international co-authored articles). The
Journals that had published the highest number of articles
difference between the sets is due to the longer tail of
in the national co-authored and international co-authored
international co-authored journals with fewer than five
sets were identified and the top five titles are presented in
articles.
Figure 2: International collaboration density by countries Source: Web of Science
30
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 4: Journal titles with highest number of articles with Australian co-authors NC
IC
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
codes than international co-authored publications, at 4.77 per cent and 32.58 per cent, respectively. International co-authored articles have higher representation in
Title
Articles (n)
Title
Articles (n)
‘Commerce, Management, Tourism and Services’ (16.98
Australasian Journal of Educational Technology
124
Antiquity
31
co-authored articles, and in ‘History and Archaeology’
Australian Geographer
118
Social Indicators Research
Australian Journal of Social Issues
108
Annals of Tourism 28 Research
Higher Education Research & Development
97
Australasian Journal of Early Childhood
94
per cent) compared with 7.93 per cent in the national at 6.85 per cent compared with 4.61 per cent for the national co-authored articles. The field ‘Studies in Human
29
Society’ is represented in almost equal proportions in the two articles’ sets, with a less than one per cent difference. The analysis performed on the Research Area terms of Web of Science included an examination of subject fields
International 26 Journal of Science Education
across the full data set. Web of Science assigns more than
Teaching & Teacher Education
indexed with one Research Area term only; 22 records
26
one indexing term to some records. In the Australian HASS data set, approximately 78 per cent of the records were were not assigned terms. On this basis, the first (or only)
Note: NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored
Research Area term assigned to a record was used in the analysis. A total of 32 different Research Areas were assigned to records in the data set and all were social
Figure 3 presents the findings for this analysis and suggests more similarities than variation exists between
sciences or humanities terms, indicating the search strategy achieved its aim.
the fields in which national co-authored and international
In the first calculation, the data were sorted by Research
co-authored article authors are publishing. National
Area and by authorship type. Authorship types within each
co-authored articles are stronger in the ‘Multidisciplinary’
of the Research Area sets were calculated as a percentage
(8.75 per cent) and ‘Education’ (41.79 per cent)
of all records indexed with that Research Area term.The 10
100%
22 Philosophy & Religious Studies 21 History & Archaeology
90%
20 Language, Communication & Culture
80%
19 Studies in Creative Arts & Writing 18 Law & Legal Studies
70%
17 Psychology & Cognitive Sciences
60%
16 Studies in Human Society
50%
15 Commerce, Management, Tourism & Services
40%
13 Education
14 Economics 12 Built Environment & Design
30%
11 Medical & Health Sciences
20%
08 Information & Computing Sciences 04 Earth Sciences
10% 0%
01 Mathematical Sciences NC (3532)
IC (1154)
MD Multidisciplinary
Figure 3: Field of Research code analysis for journals with five or more articles with national or international co-authors (number of articles) Note: NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
31
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Research Areas with the highest number of records in the
With the exception of Geography and Arts & Humanities
dataset are presented in authorship categories in Figure 4.
– Other Topics these Research Areas tended to have lower
The large set, Social Sciences – Other Topics, had the
numbers of publications in the set. The humanities fields
highest rate of IC, followed by Archaeology, Geography,
published more journal articles than book chapters; a
and Education & Educational Research. These same
finding that is probably related to database coverage rather
Research Areas and Sociology were also collaborating
than anomalous scholarly communication behaviour of
at the highest national co-authored rates. Literature had
Australian humanities authors.
the highest proportion of sole-authored publications
The final analysis explored citation rates by Research
(95.5 per cent) in the top 10 publishing Research Areas
Areas. Presented in Table 6, average citations and
and across the full data set. Of the Research Areas with
citation level at the 75th percentile were calculated for
fewer publications (excluding those with less than 20
sole-authored, national co-authored and international
publications), Demography (300 publications) had the
co-authored publications in the top 10 publishing
highest international co-authored rate at 29 per cent and
Research Areas. Co-authorship creates a citation advantage
highest rate overall and Family Studies (393 publications)
in the majority of these Research Areas. An exception
had the highest proportion of national co-authored
is the History international co-authored set, which has
publications (47.6 per cent).
lower citation rates than for its national co-authored and
In order to identify any associations between
sole-authored publications. Potentially accounting for this
publication types and citations (discussed below),
outlier, the History international co-authored publications
the Research Areas were analysed for publication type
comprised 53 book chapters with a total of 2 citations
distribution. Table 5 presents the Research Areas that
and 34 journal articles with a total of 37 citations.
had a majority of book chapter publications and the five
Large publishing Research Areas are likely to produce
Research Areas with the highest proportion of article
more reliable results for this analysis, however another
publications. Because the full data set was made up of
approach to examining citations by Research Area is to
over 70 per cent articles, most Research Areas were
explore the influence of collaboration overall. Of the
found to publish more articles than other publication
Research Areas in Table 6, three had collaboration (national
types, therefore the analysis presented in Table 5 was
co-authored and international co-authored) rates of over
limited to the top five Research Areas.
50 per cent: Education & Educational Research, Geography, and Social Sciences – Other Topics. Several Research Areas
Archaeology (520)
with fewer publications also
Arts & Humanities Other Topics (604) Education & Educational Research
had collaboration rates of greater than 50 per cent and these are presented, with mean citations and citation
Geography (936)
level at the 75th percentile, in
History (1574)
SA
Table 7.
Linguistics (1129)
NC
that
Literature (1382)
IC
Tables 6 and 7 suggest Research Areas
that
engage in high rates of collaboration and for which journal articles are the major
Philosophy (1094)
publication type (illustrated
Social Sciences - Other Topics (1719)
by Geography, Family Studies, and Social Issues) will attract
Sociology (794)
citations at or above the mean 0
20
40
60
80
100
Percentage
and 75th percentile level for national co-authored and international
co-authored
Figure 4: Top 10 publishing Research Areas (no. of publications) by authorship category
publications. The fields with
Note: SA – sole-authored; NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored
higher citation rates than
32
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
the average for international co-authored and national
collaboration, had low average citation rates of 0.72 and
co-authored publication (3.75 and 3.03, respectively)
1.03 for national co-authored and IC, respectively.
are social sciences. In contrast, the social sciences field
Discussion
Criminology & Penology, which had a high proportion of book chapters and was involved in just under 50 per cent
This study considered collaboration patterns by Australian
Table 5: Research Areas with a majority of book chapters and highest proportion of journal articles Research Area (n)
authors publishing in HASS fields by seeking answers to the following questions:Which publication types and how
Book chapters Articles %
Film, Radio & Television (245)
73.47
Ethnic Studies (180)
67.78
Criminology & Penology (139)
61.15
many are produced through national and international collaborations? What are the citation rates for national
%
and international collaborations, and for which fields? Are proximity and language associated with higher national and international collaboration? And which fields are involved in higher rates of national and international
Women’s Studies (339)
98.23
collaboration? Publications records from the Web of
Geography (936)
95.19
Science database were the primary data and these were
Social Issues (319)
92.79
limited to publications between 2004 and 2013 that were
Family Studies (393)
92.11
indexed with terms relating to humanities and softer social
Arts & Humanities – Other Topics (604)
90.89
sciences fields. Journal articles comprised the majority of publications (over 70 per cent), which corresponds with Turner and Brass’ (2014, p. 65) analysis of the ERA 2012 data. Articles also made up the
Table 6: Top 10 publishing Research Areas (number of publications): Mean citations and citation level at 75th percentile by authorship category SA Research Area (n)
Mean
Archaeology (520)
1.60
NC 75th
Mean 2
highest proportion of national co-authored publications, while
IC
75th
1.47
Mean 2
book
75th
2.41
chapters
and
articles
were produced in almost equal
3
proportions
by
international
Arts & Humanities – Other Topics (604)
0.76
1
1.26
1
2.48
2
co-authors. The number of books
Education & Educational Research (5596)
2.35
2
2.84
3
3.75
4
was negligible across the data set.
Geography (936)
5.78
8
6.44
8
6.55
7
History (1574)
0.66
1
1.06
1
0.45
0
Linguistics (1129)
1.93
2
1.43
2
2.68
3
levels (12.8 per cent) than reported
Literature (1382)
0.45
0
0.36
0
2.86
4
for science fields (40 per cent)
Philosophy (1094)
1.41
1
1.58
2
3.21
5
are not surprising and support
Social Sciences – Other Topics (1719)
2.65
2
3.63
4
4.28
4
numerous earlier studies’ findings
Sociology (794)
3.11
3
4.30
5
6.52
6
Note: SA – sole-authored; NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored
Research Area (n)
SA
% Mean
NC 75th
Mean
IC
75th
international partners at lower
(Abramo et al., 2014; Bordons & Gómez, 2000; Endersby, 1996; Gossart & Oezman, 2009; Larivière,
Table 7: Research Areas (number of publications) with >50% collaboration: Mean citations and citation level at 75th percentile by authorship category NC+IC
The results showing Australian HASS authors collaborate with
Mean
Gingras & Archambault, 2006; Ma et al., 2014; MarshakovaShaikevich, 2006; Nikzad et al., 2011; Ossenblok et al., 2014;
75th
Puuska et al., 2014; Stefaniak,
Demography (300)
57.67
4.15
4
3.37
3.75
3.29
4
2001). The reported increase
Family Studies (393)
60.31
2.76
3
3.50
4
5.76
5.75
in international collaboration
Social Issues (321)
57.94
2.65
3
4.16
4
5.53
9
Social Work (479)
62.84
2.12
3
2.46
3
3.18
5
Note: SA – sole-authored; NC – national co-authored; IC – international co-authored vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
generally (Beaver, 2001; Haustein et al., 2011; Ossenblok et al., 2014; Universities UK, 2008; Wuchty et al., 2007) was also
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
33
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
seen in this study, which found international co-authorship
amongst the top five collaborating countries for science
tripled over five years, between 2005 and 2009, and by
authors, although it features strongly when a calculation
2011 had exceeded national collaboration growth rate.
for ‘collaboration intensity’ is reported (Office of Chief
In this respect, the results were similar to those found
Scientist, 2012, p. 142). HASS co-authorship with Chinese
for science fields over a similar period (Office of Chief
partners was in the top five collaborating countries,
Scientist, 2012, p. 140). The steady rise in international
however, co-authorship with others in the Asian region is
co-authorship is possibly attributable to the release of a
limited, echoing the findings of Turner and Brass (2014)
report (Department of Education, Science and Training,
for HASS collaboration and the results for educational
2006) that proposed using international benchmarks
researchers’ collaborations (Bennett et al., 2013).
to assess research quality, leading to predictions that
The broad agreement, with some qualifications (Katz &
international collaboration would increase (Genoni et al.,
Martin,1997; Moed,2005),that international co-authorship
2009, p. 94). Another explanation could be the increased
increases citation rates is confirmed for this selection of
coverage of Australian journals by Web of Science in the
Australian HASS publications. Overall, mean citation rates
late 2000s (Haddow & Genoni, 2009), in part due to the
were lowest (1.64) for the sole authored publications,
creation of an eligible journal list for the ERA and lobbying
rising to 3.02 for national co-authored publications, and
of Thomson Reuters by the national Academies and journal
3.75 for international collaborations. However, citation
editors. If the latter, the increases reported may reflect the
rates varied across fields and appeared to relate to the
availability of data for analysis rather than a real growth in
social sciences – humanities continuum and the types of
international co-authorship.
publications most frequently authored. Social sciences
Previous research has found that HASS has higher
fields (Geography, Family Studies and Social Issues) had
rates of national, or inter-institutional, collaboration than
the highest citation rates and these fields also had high
other fields (Hoekman et al., 2010). This can be related
collaboration rates. Regardless of the field however,
to the national focus that characterises many social
the findings suggest that any type of collaboration will
sciences fields (Hicks, 2005) and Australia’s physical size
improve the potential to attract citations. For example,
is likely to be an additional factor that influences research
mean citations to internationally co-authored publications
collaboration activities. Compared with the findings for
in the Arts & Humanities – Other Topics are three times
Australian science fields (Office of Chief Scientist, 2012,
that of sole authored publications, and in Literature
p. 140), with approximately 28 per cent of ‘domestic’
internationally co-authored publications are cited at five
publications, the findings for national collaboration for
times the rate of sole authored publications.
the HASS fields at just over a quarter of the publications
Education journals were well represented in co-authored
do not support the earlier study. However, collaboration
articles in the study’s Field of Research codes analysis,
generally was found to be very low with less than 100
particularly national collaborations.These findings support
Australian HASS authors collaborating on more than 10
earlier work that shows strong collaboration rates for the
publications; that is, half a per cent of the total number
education field (Abramo et al., 2014; Larivière, Gingras &
of collaborating authors. The higher levels of national
Archambault, 2006; Ma et al., 2014; Ossenblok et al., 2014;
collaboration that was found for the east coast of Australia
Turner & Brass, 2014). In relation to the findings for Web
is explained by the density of universities in those regions
of Science Research Areas, it was the Social Sciences –
and physical proximity, relative to the rest of the country.
Other Topics field that had the highest international and
Physical proximity, language, social distance and
overall collaboration rates and the majority of Geography
cultural ties have been found to affect the extent of
publications were also co-authored. Less-often studied
international collaboration (Hoekman et al., 2010; Katz,
social sciences fields, Demography and Family Studies,
1994; Katz & Martin, 1997; Luukkonen et al., 1992). In
collaborated internationally and nationally, respectively, at
Australia, it appears that proximity is less important than
the highest rates, while none of the humanities fields had
language and cultural ties for international co-authorship.
more than 13 per cent of co-authored publications. It is
With the exception of New Zealand, Australian HASS
in the nature of social sciences, especially fields such as
authors collaborate most often with geographically distant
education and social work which are bound by common
English-speaking countries; England and the United States.
policy and labour systems, that publications are likely to
Australian authors in science fields collaborate similarly,
focus on national issues. Certainly, the Education field in
with the United States and United Kingdom as the main
this study had the highest (of the large publishing fields)
co-authors. Unlike the HASS authors, New Zealand is not
ratio of national to international collaboration.
34
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
In terms of limitations to the study, the existence
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Conclusion
of two subject schemes, Fields of Research codes and Web of Science Research Areas, introduces additional
This first quantitative analysis of Australian HASS
complications and resulted in finding marked differences
co-authorship has identified patterns that both support
in the two analyses. For example, in the article FoR code
and contest previous research findings. Like many earlier
analysis psychology and management codes were found,
studies, the research found an increase in international
whereas neither field appeared in the Web of Science
co-authorship was occurring for Australian HASS, and
Research Areas assigned to publications. In addition,
international collaboration was growing at higher rates
the FoR codes are assigned to journals only, so that a
than national collaboration. While proximity appears to
comparison across the whole data set was not feasible.
influence national collaboration, international collaboration
While acknowledging that research classification schemes
does not appear to be affected in the same way and occurs
are created for different purposes (Glänzel & Schubert,
most often with countries that are at extreme distances
2003), the variance between schemes is a consideration
from Australia, both in terms of geography and time zones.
for researchers undertaking subject fields analysis within
These countries, the United States and England, are those
a specific context, such as in this Australia study.
with which Australia has strong language and cultural
The search strategy used for this study was successful in
ties. Given Australia’s isolation, one could speculate that
identifying publications in the humanities, arts and softer
international collaboration with distant co-authors is an
social sciences, however the Web of Science data presented
accepted mode of research for Australian HASS authors.
challenges. Cleansing the data was time-consuming and
Although mindful that this research “must be
involved extensive parsing and reformatting to create
interpreted as being the output of scholars who publish
individual records that conformed to a standard data
…, not the output of all scholars in the SSH” (Larivière,
format. More importantly,Web of Science coverage is likely
Gingras & Archambault, 2006, p. 520), the results have
to influence the study’s results. There are many factors
provided a quantitative benchmark for Australian HASS
that contribute to this caution, including the dominance
collaboration not previously available. The results present
of journal articles in Web of Science, compared to the
future researchers with a foundation from which to
types of publications that characterise HASS scholarly
explore Australian HASS collaboration in other forms and
communication, such as book and chapter publications
to examine patterns in Australian HASS co-authorship in
(Hicks, 1999, 2005; Moed, 2005).The coverage of HASS fields
the years ahead.
by Web of Science may also produce variations in the results that do not reflect a completely true picture of collaboration
Acknowledgment
in different fields. In 2006, Butler and Visser examined Web of Science coverage of a large sample of Australian articles.
The authors would like to thank Craig Caulfield for his
This study found, for example, that Web of Science included
assistance with data cleansing.
34 per cent of all Australian history articles but only 18 per cent coverage of the field’s total output. Butler and Visser’s
Gaby Haddow is a senior lecturer in the Department of
(p. 329) list of fields differ to those discussed in this paper,
Information Studies, Curtin University, Perth, Australia.
which makes precise comparisons difficult, however
Contact: G.Haddow@curtin.edu.au
along with history, the fields of philosophy, education and
Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia is an associate professor in the Department of Spatial Sciences, Curtin University, Perth, Australia.
language are listed. Philosophy had a relatively high Web of Science coverage of articles, 49 per cent, with 32 per cent coverage of all philosophy outputs. Education and language had lower Web of Science coverage, with 25 per cent of all
Michele Willson is an associate professor in the Department of Internet Studies, Curtin University, Perth, Australia.
articles and 14 per cent of all outputs. It is reasonable to conclude, therefore, that the data set represents a sample (proportion unknown) of co-authored HASS publications. A fuller picture of HASS collaboration could be developed from other sources, such as author generated publication lists and surveys of authors. Although a major undertaking, this approach may also shed light on the higher levels of national collaboration in some fields. vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
References Abramo, D., D’Angelo, C.A., & Murgia, G. (2014). Variation in research collaboration patterns across academic ranks. Scientometrics 98, 2275-2294. ArcGIS (2014). ArcGIS Desktop. Release 10.3. Redlands, CA: Environmental Systems Research Institute. Australian Research Council (2012). ERA 2012 Journal List. Retrieved from http://www.arc.gov.au/era/era_2012/archive/era_journal_list.htm.
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
35
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Australian Bureau of Statistics (2008). Australian and New Zealand Standard Research Classification (ANZSRC). Retrieved from http://www.abs.gov.au/ ausstats/abs@.nsf/0/6BB427AB9696C225CA2574180004463E. Beaver, D. deB. (2001). Reflections on scientific collaboration (and its study): Past, present, and future. Scientometrics 52, 365-377.
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Katz, J.S. (1994). Geographical proximity and scientific collaboration. Scientometrics 31,31–43. Katz, J.S., & Martin, B.R. (1997). What is research collaboration? Research Policy 26, 1-18.
Bennett, D., Smith, E., Bennett, S., Chan, P., Bobis, J., Harrison, N., Seddon, T., & Shore, S. (2013). Who is conducting educational research in Australia and how can their work be supported? Australian Educational Researcher 40, 473-92.
Larivière, V., Archambault, É., Gingras, Y. & Vignola-Gagnè, É. (2006). The place of serials in referencing practices: Comparing natural sciences and engineering with social sciences and humanities. Journal of the American Society for Information Science and Technology 57, 997-1004.
Biglia, B., & Butler, L. (2009). ARC-supported research: The impact of journal publication output 2001-2005. Canberra: Australian Research Council. Retrieved from http://www.arc.gov.au/general/arc_publications.htm.
Larivière, V., Gingras, Y., & Archambault, É. (2006). Canadian collaborative networks: A comparative analysis of the natural sciences, social sciences and the humanities. Scientometrics 68, 519-33.
Bordons, M., & Gómez, I. (2000). Collaboration networks in science, in B. Cronin & H.B. Atkins (eds). The Web of Knowledge: A festschrift in honor of Eugene Garfield. Medford, New Jersey: American Society for Information Science.
Laudel, G. (2002). What do we measure by co-authorships? Research Evaluation 11, 3-15.
Butler, L. & Visser, M. (2006). Extending citation analysis to non-source items. Scientometrics 66, 327-343. Department of Education, Science and Training, Australia (2006). Research Quality Impact: Assessing the Quality and Impact of Research in Australia: The Recommended RQF. Canberra. Retrieved from http://w3.unisa.edu.au/rqf/ dest/docs/TheRecommendedRQFwebsiterelease14November2007.pdf. Elsevier (2013). Scopus content. Retrieved from http://www.elsevier.com/__ data/assets/pdf_file/0006/155427/Scopus-Content.pdf. Endersby, J. W. (1996). Collaborative research in the social sciences: Multiple authorship and publication credit. Social Science Quarterly 77, 375–392 Genoni, P., Merrick, H., and Willson, M. (2009). E-research and scholarly communication in the humanities, in N.W Jankowski (ed.). e-research: Transformations in scholarly practice. NY and Oxon,UK: Routledge. Glänzel, W. & Schubert, A. (2003). A new classification of science fields and subfields designed for scientometric evaluation purposes’, Scientometrics 56, 357–67. Glänzel, W., & Schubert, A. (2005). Analysing scientific networks through co-authorship, in H.F. Moed, W. Glänzel & U. Schmoch (eds). Handbook of quantitative science and technology research. New York: Kluwer.
Levitt, J.M. & Thelwall, M. (2010). Does the higher citation of collaborative research differ from region to region? A case study in economics. Scientometrics 85, 171-183. Luukkonen, T., Persson, O., & Silvertsen, G. (1992). Understanding patterns of international scientific collaboration. Science, Technology & Human Values 17, 101–126. Ma, F., Li, Y., & Chen, B. (2014). Study of the collaboration in the field of the Chinese humanities and social sciences. Scientometrics 100, 439–458. Marshakova-Shaikevich, I. (2006). Scientific collaboration of new 10 EU countries in the field of social sciences. Information Processing & Management 42, 1592–1598. Moed, H. F. (2005). Citation analysis in research evaluation. Dordrecht: Springer. Nikzad, M., Jamali, H. R., & Hariri, N. (2011). Patterns of Iranian co-authorship networks in social sciences: A comparative study. Library & Information Science Research 33, 313–319. Office of Chief Scientist (2012). Health of Australian Science. Canberra: Australian Government. Retrieved from http://www.chiefscientist.gov.au.
Gossart, C., & Oezman, M. (2009). Co-authorship networks in social sciences: The case of Turkey. Scientometrics 78, 323–345.
Ossenblok, T.L.B., Verleysen, F.T., & Engels, T.C.E. (2014). Co-authorship of journal articles and book chapters in the social sciences and humanities (20002010). Journal of the Association for Information Science and Technology 65, 882-897.
Haddow, G. (2015). Research classification and the social sciences and humanities in Australia: (Mis)Matching organisational unit contribution and the impact of collaboration. Research Evaluation 24, 325-339.
Puuska, H-M., Muhonen, R., & Leino, Y. (2014). International and domestic co-publishing and their citation impact in different disciplines. Scientometrics 98, 823-39.
Haddow, G., & Genoni, P. (2009). Australian education journals: Quantitative and qualitative indicators. Australian Academic & Research Libraries 40, 88-104.
Schaffer, T. (2004). Psychology citations revisited: Behavioral research in the age of electronic resources. The Journal of Academic Librarianship 30, 354-360.
Haustein, S., Tunger, D., Heinrichs, G., & Baelz, G. (2011). Reasons for and developments in international scientific collaboration: Does an Asia-Pacific research area exist from a bibliometric point of view? Scientometrics 86, 727746. Hicks, D. (1999). The difficulty of achieving full coverage of international social science literature and the bibliometric consequences. Scientometrics 44, 193–215. Hicks, D. (2005). The four literatures of social sciences, in H.F. Moed, W. Glänzel & U. Schmoch (eds). Handbook of quantitative science and technology research. New York: Kluwer. Hoekman, J., Frenken, K., & Tijssen, R.J.W. (2010). Research collaboration at a distance: Changing spatial patterns of scientific collaboration in Europe. Research Policy 39, 662-673. IBM SPSS Statistics (2013). IBM SPSS Statistics for Windows, Version 22.0. Armonk, NY: IBM Corp.
Stefaniak, B. (2001). International co-operation in science and in social sciences as reflected in multinational papers indexed in SCI and SSCI. Scientometrics 52, 193–210. Thomson Reuters (2014). Web of Science: The complete citation connection. Retrieved from http://wokinfo.com/citationconnection/realfacts/#regional. Turner, G., & Brass, K. (2014). Mapping the humanities, arts and social sciences in Australia. Canberra: Academy of the Humanities. Retrieved from http://www.humanities.org.au/PolicyResearch/Research/ MappingtheHumanitiesArtsSocialSciences.aspx. Universities UK (2008). International research collaboration: Opportunities for the UK higher education sector. London: Universities UK. Retrieved from http://globalhighered.files.wordpress.com/2008/08/uukreportmay2008.pdf. van Rijnsoever, F. J. & Hessels, L.K. (2011). Factors associated with disciplinary and interdisciplinary research collaboration. Research Policy 40, 463-472. Wuchty, S., Jones, B. F., & Uzzi, B. (2007). The increasing dominance of teams in production of knowledge. Science 316, 1036-39.
JMP11 (2014). JMP 11. Cary, NC: SAS Institute Inc.
36
Collaboration in HASS in Australia Gaby Haddow, Jianhong (Cecilia) Xia & Michele Willson
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman Curtin University
Policies and programs to address higher education disadvantage reveal four distinct approaches, each revealing certain assumptions about the nature of educational disadvantage. These are: creating mass higher education systems; redistributing or allocating certain places to disadvantaged students; changing the cultural practices of institutions; and shifting the policy focus from access towards higher education outcomes or benefits. Using the Australian higher education sector as a case study, each of these approaches is defined, identified and examined in regard to its impact on widening access and participation in higher education. An alternative approach – a fifth act – is proposed; one which concentrates on the need to understand the identity of the student, both in terms of how he/she understands disadvantage and what he/she wants out of higher education. Keywords: access, participation, disadvantage, higher education, Australia
Introduction
for many policymakers, the essence of higher education equity policy.
For at least the last quarter century, policies designed to
However, whilst distributive justice is synonymous
widen access to and participation in higher education
with equity in higher education, conceptualising all
have been largely predicated on notions of proportional
efforts to widen higher education participation as
representation or ‘changing the balance of the student
iterations of redistributive justice misrepresents a
population to reflect more closely the composition
wider range of strategies designed to increase the
of society as a whole’ (Department of Employment
access and participation of disadvantaged students in
Education and Training, 1990, p. 2). The goal of social
higher education. The purpose of this paper is twofold.
justice has been a common thread linking higher
First, it seeks to outline a framework for understanding
education policies; various approaches represent forms
the various approaches (what are called here ‘acts’)
of distributive justice; that is the proportional distribution
to addressing educational disadvantage in the tertiary
of a resource to diverse groups and individuals (Gale &
stage of education. These include, but are not limited to,
Densmore, 2000; Gale & Tranter, 2011). These approaches
policies of redistributive justice. To this end, this study
speak to fundamental principles of egalitarianism, which
uses the Australian higher education sector as a case
hold that whilst humans are of equal value, the existence
study. Examining policies dating back to the mid-1940s,
of socially-constructed inequality requires intervention
four approaches or acts are identified: massification,
to ensure equitable distribution (Walton et al., 2014). The
redistribution, re-normalisation and benefit, with each
aim of creating a more representative student body is,
described and discussed below. Second, a range of available
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
37
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
data and statistics is interrogated to empirically consider
education toward the levels achieved in the leading OECD
the effect these various acts of addressing disadvantage
countries (Dawkins, 1988). It was thought that this could
have had on the composition of the Australian higher
only be realised by increasing the number of degree-
education sector since 1950. These impacts are measured
awarding institutions, to create what became known as
in terms of overall access to higher education, changes to
the unified national system (UNS) of higher education.
student demographics and more recently, considerations
In order to fund this expansion, the Federal Government
of the post-enrolment and post-graduation outcomes for
reintroduced student tuition fees, complemented by a
the students.
Commonwealth subsidy for each student place. However, to avoid reintroducing an upfront price barrier, the
Acts of equity: four approaches to widening participation in higher education Massification
cost of education to the student was supported by the introduction of an income-contingent loan system known as the Higher Education Contribution Scheme (HECS). There is broad consensus that the UNS/HECS ‘double
Acts of massification seek first and foremost to increase
act’ represented the most significant implementation of
the overall number of higher education participants,
integrated policies, based on principles of massification,
not any particular subset. The aphorism ‘a rising tide
in the history of Australian higher education (cf. Croucher,
lifts all boats’ is regularly cited (Sheldon & Gottschalk,
Marginson, Norton, & Wells, 2013).
1986), evidencing a belief that government social policy
The most recent act of massification has been the
is most effective when it first addresses the general,
introduction of a demand-driven system of funding
macroeconomic environment (cf. Marks, 2009). Acts of
higher education in 2012. This has removed the cap on
massification are effective in transitioning a nation’s
the overall number of places subsidised by the Federal
higher education sector from the elite to mass stage,
Government so as to enable a closer match between
towards universal access (Trow, 1974, 2000). In Australia,
demand and supply and a more flexible and responsive
as is frequently the case internationally, most major
allocation of university places (Department of Industry
higher education equity policies have been founded on
Innovation Climate Change Science Research and Tertiary
acts of massification. One of the most notable was the
Education, 2013).The potential of this act of massification
introduction of the Commonwealth Scholarships Scheme
is significant; however it is too soon to assess its full impact
in 1951. The Scholarship scheme was academically merit-
and therefore the scheme is not considered further here.
based in terms of provision and covered tuition fees for any and all students meeting the academic criteria. By
Redistribution
1963, it was estimated almost one in five students held
Acts of redistribution occur when policy and action
a Commonwealth Scholarship (Committee on the Future
directly target disadvantaged students to increase their
of Tertiary Education in Australia, 1964). More important,
proportional representation within higher education.
in terms of the number of students involved, was the
Redistributive acts are the most commonly-recognised
Commonwealth Reconstruction Training Scheme (CRTS),
form of higher education equity policy. In Australia, the
begun in 1944. Its aim was to give service men and
above mentioned policies of massification were generally
women the opportunity to acquire occupations, with free
enacted in conjunction with acts of redistribution.As part
training at a university or technical college, plus living and
of the Commonwealth Scholarships Scheme a means-
supplementary allowances. In 1947, more than five times
tested living allowance was provided for students from
as many students received financial assistance under the
socio-economically
CRTS as had received similar forms of student assistance
abolition of tuition fees in 1974 was also accompanied
prior to its implementation (Anderson, Boven, Fensham,
by the introduction of a means-tested living allowance for
& Powell, 1980).
students. When tuition fees were reintroduced in 1989,
disadvantaged
backgrounds. The
In 1988, the Government intervened to alter supply
means-tested student support packages continued. And at
more than any other previous administration. At the
the same time the Government introduced the demand
time, the Government estimated the national demand for
driven system of funding in 2012, it adopted ambitious
higher education places was exceeding supply by around
targets and a range of measures to support increased
20,000 students per year. Furthermore, it considered that
participation from students from low socio-economic
by the year 2000, 125,000 graduates per annum would
backgrounds (Bradley, Noonan, Nugent, & Scales, 2008).
be required to lift Australian participation in higher
These targets were supported by significant funding to
38
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
encourage and reward universities for enrolling these students.
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Acts of re-normalisation are not restricted to staffing profiles; they also extend to cover the mechanisms
Policies based upon principles of redistribution assume
by which students are selected. In Australia, the focus
that acts of massification function to broaden access to
of re-normalisation acts has been on supporting non-
higher education more than widen it. The persistence
traditional pathways to higher education beyond the
of inequity at more disaggregated levels thus requires
traditional means of completion of Year 12 studies; more
government policy to become more targeted. In 1990,
specifically the undertaking of academic-track subjects
the Australian Federal Government argued for the need to
that are eligible to be considered in the construction of
define particular groups of disadvantaged students and set
an entry score.This entry score is known as the Australian
national equity objectives and targets for each.The groups
Tertiary Admission Rank (ATAR). The ATAR is a percentile
specifically targeted were: Indigenous students; students
score denoting a student’s ranking relative to his or
from low socio-economic status (SES) backgrounds;
her peers in the same cohort. A wealth of research has
women enrolled in non-traditional areas of study; people
demonstrated links between socio-economic factors
from non-English speaking backgrounds; people with
and ATAR scores (cf. Dobson & Skuja, 2005; Jacobs &
disabilities; and people from rural and isolated areas
Harvey, 2005; Marks, McMillan, & Himman, 2001). In
(Department of Employment Education and Training,
response, Government higher education equity policy
1990; Martin, 1994). Targets, ranging from a 15 to 50 per
has focussed on ‘articulation’, which refers to increasing
cent increase in enrolments were set for each group.
and improving pathways between vocational education
Strategies to effect these improvements included ‘tertiary
and training (VET) and higher education. The hypothesis
awareness and schools link programs… special admission
is that since disadvantaged students have higher rates of
arrangements, bridging and support programs and units;
participation in VET than higher education, VET studies
and strategies to make teaching materials and processes
can act to enhance both aspiration and preparation for
more relevant to the needs of disadvantaged students’
higher education (James, 2007; Wheelahan, 2009a). In
(Department of Employment Education and Training,
theory at least, admissions processes are ‘blind’ to the type
1990, p. 3).
of academic qualifications being used by the prospective student, as the various pathways all feed in to a common
Re-normalisation
ranking system.
Acts of re-normalisation refer to policies and practices designed to alter the normative behaviour or culture of
Benefit
the higher education sector or its constituent institutions,
Acts of benefit involve attempts to widen the discussion
so as to make it and them more inclusive and embracing
from participation, where it has traditionally been
of student diversity. Rather than requiring students to fit
focussed, to more fully consider the social and economic
the existing institutional culture, acts of re-normalisation
outcomes of higher education for disadvantaged students,
require that these cultures be adapted to better fit the
as well as society more broadly (Brennan & Shah, 2003;
needs of increasingly diverse student groups (Zepke
Gidley, Hampson, Wheeler, & Bereded-Samuel, 2010). This
& Leach, 2005). Research indicates that recruitment of
is generally measured in three ways: satisfaction with
female faculty members in science-centric courses has
the course experience; employment and earnings; and
the potential to increase female student recruitment
transition to further (e.g. postgraduate) studies (Pitman
(Bettinger & Long, 2005) and subsequent retention in
& Koshy, 2014). However, acts of benefit also encompass
the course (Robst, Keil, & Russo, 1998). Similar findings
in-program strategies designed to increase the completion
show the positive influence of role models for students
rates for disadvantaged students.To date,Australian higher
based on their ethnic or socio-economic background
education equity policy at the national level has been
(cf. Crosnoe, Mistry, & Elder, 2002; Freeman, 1997). From
mostly focussed on access and participation. The policy
2013, Australian universities have been required to set
debate concerning post-graduation behaviours historically
progressive targets for the number of Indigenous staff,
has focussed on matching higher education supply with
both academic and general, in their employ.This followed
workforce demand at the generic (i.e. graduate) level.
recommendations arising from the Review of Higher
Since the 1990s, educational qualifications have become
Education Access and Outcomes for Aboriginal and
increasingly important to almost all forms of long-term,
Torres Strait Islander People (Behrendt, Larkin, Griew, &
career oriented employment (Marginson, 1993). However,
Kelly, 2012).
the ability of either universities or government to predict
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
39
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 1: Gender representation in Australian higher education, 1950-2010 Year
National population
1950 1951
8,178,696
National University population population (female) % 49.6%
30,630
Female %
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
collection, data for sector-wide, long-term trends prior to this time require the use of proximal assessments of disadvantage. For the period 1950–2000, female student enrolments are used as a proximal of disadvantage. Given women comprise approximately one-half the overall
21.6%
Introduction of Commonwealth Scholarships Scheme and means-tested allowance
population yet prior to the 1990s were under-represented in higher education; and that gender is one of the most stable demographic identifiers when tracing trends over long periods of time, gender provides an accurate, albeit
1955
9,199,729
49.4%
30,792
21.9%
1960
10,275,020
49.5%
53,633
23.1%
equity policy on addressing disadvantage. Table 1 shows
1965
11,387,665
49.6%
110,250
24.0%
the change in population of Australia and its universities
1970
12,507,349
49.7%
161,455
27.1%
from 1950-2010 and highlights the rise in enrolments
1974
Abolition of university tuition fees and introduction of new means-tested living allowance
1975
13,892,995
49.8%
276,559
40.6%
1980
14,695,356
50.1%
329,523
45.3%
1985
15,788,312
50.1%
370,016
47.6%
1989
Creation of the unified national system, introduction of income contingent loan system and continuation of means-tested living allowances
proximate, indication of the effect of higher education
of students overall and female students. The table also indicates the major policy ‘acts’ of massification and redistribution as described above. The trend reveals that as supply has increased, the female student population has increased both in raw numbers and as a proportion of the student body. Today, female students outnumber male students in Australian public universities. Over time, the nation’s universities have become more public in that, literally, more of the
1990
17,065,128
50.1%
485,066
52.7%
public are now able to access them. Furthermore, the
1995
18,004,882
50.2%
604,176
53.9%
proportional increase in enrolments from female students
2000
19,028,802
50.4%
695,485
55.2%
has been greater than that of male students, meaning they
2005
19,855,288
50.6%
957,176
54.3%
2010
21,507,717
50.5%
1,111,352
55.8%
are more publicly representative in terms of gender today than they were in 1950. The data for Australia indicate that, at the aggregate level,
Sources: Australian Bureau of Statistics, Department of Education and Training
acts of massification, combined with acts of redistribution,
future demand and match it with supply has always been
broad terms (i.e. gender). Since acts of massification and
problematic. Consequently, government policy has more
redistribution tend to occur simultaneously, it is difficult
often than not addressed workforce shortages via the
to ascribe degrees of success to one act over another.
more direct and immediate route of increasing visas for
However, there appears to be general consensus that
skilled migration (cf. Birrell, Edwards & Dobson, 2007).
before participation can be widened, it must first be
Policy interest in and engagement with ensuring equality
increased (Gale & Tranter, 2011; Osborne, 2003).
of post-graduation outcomes for disadvantaged students currently operates at the margins of policy debate.
ameliorate disadvantage, when disadvantage is defined in
Table 2 shows the proportional share of domestic student enrolments of each of the six higher education equity groups, from 1998 to 2008. Two things are
The impact of higher education equity policy on the Australian higher education sector since 1950
apparent. First, the effect of government policy in addressing disadvantage in higher education becomes dissipated at greater levels of disaggregation. In fact, more equity groups have seen a deterioration in their
Assessing the impact of policies of massification,
proportional share over the ten-year time period than
redistribution, re-normalisation and benefit can be
experienced any improvement. Second, even in cases
informed by empirical data. However, statistics relating
where improvements have been recorded, the revised
to specific groups of disadvantaged students have only
proportional share is still below the national population
appeared regularly since 1994, when they were defined
average. Even when policies of massification address the
as the focus of policies to widen access and participation.
issue of supply, it is often the more privileged students
Excepting smaller-scale, case-study approaches to data
who take advantage of the extra places available to a
40
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 2: Equity groups proportional share of domestic student enrolments 1998-2008 Students from a Non English speaking background
Students with a disability
Women in NonTraditional Area
Indigenous students
Low SES
Regional
Remote
1998
4.7%
2.8%
19.5%
1.3%
14.7%
n.a
n.a
1999
4.2%
2.9%
19.9%
1.3%
14.7%
n.a
n.a
2000
3.8%
3.0%
19.9%
1.2%
14.8%
n.a
n.a
2001
3.6%
3.1%
19.9%
1.3%
15.4%
19.0%
1.4%
2002
3.5%
3.4%
19.8%
1.3%
15.2%
18.7%
1.3%
2003
3.7%
3.6%
19.7%
1.3%
15.0%
18.5%
1.3%
2004
3.8%
3.7%
19.6%
1.3%
14.8%
18.2%
1.2%
2005
3.7%
4.0%
19.1%
1.2%
14.6%
17.9%
1.1%
2006
3.5%
4.0%
18.6%
1.2%
14.7%
17.9%
1.1%
2007
3.7%
4.1%
18.2%
1.3%
14.9%
17.8%
1.1%
2008
3.8%
4.1%
17.9%
1.3%
15.0%
17.8%
1.1%
~ 10.0%
18.5%
50.3%
2.5%
25.0%
27.2%
2.3%
Representation in national population
Source: Department of Education and Training, Selected Higher Education Statistics (2005 and 2010)
greater degree than the less privileged (cf. Pitman, Koshy,
representation). These four groups with below-sector
& Phillimore, 2014).
representation in the elite universities are more closely
Furthermore, policies of massification, and most
correlated with socio-economic disadvantage than the
policies of redistribution, assume an equality of institution,
two that are not (cf. Australian Bureau of Statistics, 2010;
where a degree from one university has the same value
Bradbury, Norris, & Abello, 2001). It therefore appears that
(in terms of economic and cultural capital) as the others.
the elite universities in Australia are enrolling women
The reality is that mass higher education systems contain
and non-English speaking students from predominantly
within them elite groupings, which tend to be much more
medium to high SES backgrounds. Similar findings have
restrictive in their selection and admission practices,
been found in other research (cf. Coates & Krause, 2005).
leading to even greater levels of under-representation
In regard to acts of re-normalisation: as noted
than the sector as a whole (cf. Boliver, 2013; Karabel, 2005;
previously, the focus of Australian higher education policy
Zimdars, 2010). In Australia, the Group of Eight universities
is on increasing access via pathways other than Year 12
in Australia are comprised of Australia’s oldest and most
studies. Statistics relating to VET to university transitions
prestigious universities. Table 3 shows the most recent
have not been recorded uniformly for any period of
data pertaining to enrolments of disadvantaged students
time, however the following can be extrapolated from
for the Group of Eight universities, compared to the
the Higher Education Statistics collections between
Australian higher education sector as a whole. Students
2002 and 2010. First, the proportion of students being
from low SES backgrounds, regional and remote areas,
admitted to university on the basis of prior VET study
Indigenous students, and students with a disability are all
increased from 8.9 per cent of commencing domestic
excluded from Australia’s elite universities at higher rates
undergraduate students in 2002 to 10.1 per cent in 2006
than the sector average (which are themselves below-
(Department of Education Employment and Workplace
Table 3: Domestic undergraduate student enrolments by equity group, 2013 Students from a Non English speaking background
Students with a disability
Sector
3.3%
5.4%
17.3%
1.4%
15.8%
20.2%
0.8%
Group of Eight
4.0%
4.7%
21.8%
0.8%
9.1%
11.3%
0.5%
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Women in NonTraditional Area
Indigenous students
Low SES
Regional
Remote
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
41
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Relations, 2008). Second, applications from persons with
traditional areas of study such as engineering, science
prior VET participation increased from 14.5 per cent of
and information technology (Department of Education,
all applications in 2009, to 16 per cent in 2010 and 17.3
2014)
per cent in 2011 (Department of Education Employment
Women are also under-represented in terms of the post-
and Workplace Relations, 2009. 2011; Department of
graduation benefits they experience. In 2013, the median
Industry Innovation Climate Change Science Research
starting salary for Australian female graduates (A$51,600)
and Tertiary Education, 2010). A change in reporting in
was equivalent to 93.9 per cent of the median starting
2012 prevents subsequent comparisons; nonetheless
salary earned by their male counterparts (A$55,000).
the data suggest that over time, the Government’s policy
Male graduates tended to be overrepresented in fields
focus on improving VET pathways to higher education is
of education with higher median starting salaries like
bearing fruit. However, the extent to which this translates
engineering, whilst women outnumbered males in fields
to improved outcomes for disadvantaged students is less
such as humanities, which was ranked at the lower end
clear.
of the salary distribution. Even when controlling for
In 2009, Leesa Wheelahan undertook an analysis of
field of education, personal, enrolment and occupational
published and unpublished statistics on commencing
characteristics of male and female graduates, the aggregate
domestic under-graduate students produced by the
gender wage gap was 4.4 per cent (Graduate Careers
Department of Education, Employment and Workplace
Australia, 2014).
Relations, as well as some data on VET students produced
In 2016, a report into graduate outcomes for the
by the National Centre for Vocational Education Research
aforementioned student equity groups found mixed
and data produced by some state tertiary admissions
results for the six groups of students. When considering
centres. Whilst encountering problems with the nature
issues such as earnings, relevance of qualification to
of the data collected, as this study has, Wheelahan’s
employment and security of tenure, Indigenous graduates
conclusion was that VET pathways ‘play a modest role in
and graduates from low-SES and regional backgrounds
increasing the efficiency of tertiary education in Australia,
generally experienced above average outcomes, when
but they have a long way to go before they contribute to
compared to all graduates. Conversely, graduates with
meeting equity and social justice objectives’ (Wheelahan,
a disability, females graduating from non-traditional
2009b, p. 19). This appeared to be the result of the VET
areas of study and graduates from non-English speaking
sector reproducing wider socio-economic disadvantage
backgrounds tended to experience worse outcomes
much in the same way universities themselves did
(Richardson, Bennett & Roberts, 2016).
(Wheelahan, 2009a). To date, there has been no coordinated government
Discussion
policy relating to acts of benefit; that is ensuring the outcomes of higher education are equally realised by
The history of higher education equity policy in Australia
disadvantaged students. This is an area of policy that
has been a play in four acts. First have come acts of
requires greater attention, as it is apparent that many
massification, seeking to increase supply or provide
disadvantaged students do not enjoy the same higher
support at the aggregate level. Policies of these types have
education completion rates and post-graduation benefits
been closely followed or at times enacted in conjunction
as other students. In 2013, the Department of Education
with acts of redistribution. Here, policies have focussed
and Training undertook an analysis of students entering
more on the composition of higher education student
higher education in 2005, tracking their completion rates
demographics, rather than increasing the size of the
up to 2012.They found:
sector per se. As the higher education sector moves
• Indigenous and remote students had completion rates
closer to near-universal access, inequities are identified at
significantly lower than the national average;
greater levels of disaggregation and accordingly policies
• Regional students and students from low SES
and programs become themselves more focussed.
backgrounds had completion rates slightly below the
Increasingly, attention shifts to acts of re-normalisation,
national average;
to make the sector less homogenous, and benefit, to
• Students from a non-English speaking background had completion rates above the national average; and
ensure that more disadvantaged students complete their studies and realise post-graduation benefits. The
• Whilst women in general had above-average completion
evidence is that of these four approaches, policies or
rates, they remained under-represented in non-
acts of massification have been the most successful.
42
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
However, that statement must be contextualised in two
when the nature of disadvantage itself is ever-changing
respects. First, the success of acts of massification may
and intersecting.
be largely attributed to the circumstances in which they
In many cases, disadvantage can only be addressed with
are initially enacted, where higher education is generally
the consent of the disadvantaged person him/herself.
an elite activity and qualified demand far exceeds the
Particular definitions of disadvantage rely on processes of
number of places available. Second, the success of
self-identification, for example Aboriginal and Torres Strait
massification policies can be more easily accounted
Islander (A&TSI) and disabled students. However, research
for, as they are generally measured in higher degrees
has shown that for A&TSI people, self-identification is a
of aggregation, such as overall increases in student
complex process, variously affected by social dislocation
numbers or increases by broad demographic profile
(Clark, 2000) and personal exposure to racism (Ziersch,
such as gender. Acts of redistribution – and later, acts
Gallaher, Baum, & Bentley, 2011). Indeed, some individuals
of re-normalisation and benefit – require policy actors
choose to change their A&TSI identity over time in official
to define, and measure, more nuanced understandings
records, such as the National Census (Biddle, 2014). In
of disadvantage. Their frequency increases as more
a similar vein; for many disabled students ‘the process
‘sub-groups’ of disadvantaged students are identified
of identification hurts… it is best to avoid that liminal
(Carpenter & Hayden, 1993). However, somewhat
space’ (Chandler, 2010). Acceptance, disclosure and
paradoxically, the more precise our understanding of
documentation of the disability by disabled applicants
disadvantage becomes, the more compartmentalised our
and students are key legal issues in Australia, as with the
approaches to dealing with it appear to be. Government
US and the UK (Konur, 2006). Moreover, the identities that
policies become increasingly focussed on one group of
shape definitions and understandings of disadvantage
disadvantaged students, one contributor to disadvantage
are not static; they change both at different points in the
or one consequence of the same.
time of creation and also when they are remembered.
The aforementioned six equity groups, which are the
Frequently it is the combination of life events, the
focus of Australian higher education policy design, were
personality of the student and their desire to create a life
defined more than 20 years ago. Since then, Australia’s
narrative that others understand, which influences the
social composition, backgrounds, family structures and
students’ identification of disadvantage (Goodson, Biesta,
ways of participating in higher education have undergone
Tedder, & Adair, 2010; Pitman, 2013). A student’s personal
significant change (Australian Bureau of Statistics, 2013).
perception and experience of disadvantage are therefore
Some students, such as those from lower socio-economic
key foci for a more integrated evaluation of disadvantage,
groups and/or neighbourhoods, are defined by their
as the final section of this paper describes.
place in time and space, such as living in a particular postcode at a particular moment in time. This is a cost-
The need for another act – identity
effective mechanism for the purposes of classification but, as James et al. (2004, p. 19) observe, ‘blunt and
Ultimately, it is the student who is best placed to identify
inadequate for measuring both the aggregate patterns
the forms of disadvantage that have had an impact on his
and the potential educational disadvantage of individuals’.
or her educational experience. Barbara Comber does an
Creating definitions of disadvantage such as these also
excellent job of explaining the dangers in foregrounding
marginalise other disadvantaged students, including:
background; that is, allowing an individual’s demographics
students who are first in their family to attend university;
to overwhelm the reality of their lived experience:
many part-time students, students of sole parents; students who are sole parents, refugees, and students who are carers – all of whom have been identified in the literature as experiencing disadvantage. Furthermore, as described in the paper, there is often overlap between categories
How can the ‘characters’ be introduced without reducing them to statistics, categories, exotics or stereotypes? On what basis do researchers make decisions about aspects of students’ material lives to count as data, interpretive categories, contextual information, results? (Comber, 1998, p. 1)
of disadvantage and many students experience multiple types of disadvantage. These difficulties are exacerbated
Bourdieu and Wacquant (1992, p. 106) refer to a
by a tendency to label all pupils from specific groups
‘resemblance within a difference’; that is the ways in
as underachievers (Stevens, 2007). A key challenge
which certain individuals share a common doxa, which
for researchers and policymakers therefore lies in
unites them despite their individual traits. However,
conceptualising disadvantage, and policies to address it,
the reverse is equally true: categories of disadvantage
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
43
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
overlook the reality that each person’s experience with
of student identity. Whilst they would still not be entirely
the same is highly individualistic. In other words, from a
accurate and still rely on proximal understandings of
policy perspective the act of defining a particular group of
disadvantage, they would be more highly nuanced than
students as being disadvantaged risks overlooking critical
the current definitions and – crucially – be able to be
‘differences within a resemblance’. Engaging with more
operationalised at the governmental level.
nuanced understandings of disadvantage, through acts of identity, is one way in which more formulaic approaches
Conclusion
to addressing higher education disadvantage can be de-inscribed from current policy. For example, any critical
With our improved understanding of higher education
assessment of a policy should critique whether the policy
disadvantage comes a need to incorporate student
takes into account the underlying sources of the problem
identities into our definitions of the same. This act
it intends to address (Bessant, 1993). However, in the case
requires policymakers and researchers to explore
of addressing low-SES disadvantage, which is measured by
higher education disadvantage first and foremost
postcode,it is a proxy of disadvantage that is being targeted,
from the perspective of the individual. Of course,
not its actual causes. Students of other SES backgrounds,
individual interventions into defining disadvantage
who have not experienced significant disadvantage, can
are problematic for policymakers, who not only seek
be labelled as such by virtue of the postcode they state
to measure what they value but, to some degree, value
on their application form. And even for those who are
only what they can measure. Statistics are central to the
disadvantaged, as Connell (1994, p. 128) observes, ‘the
governing practices of the state; they make the nation
poverty of indigenous peoples, still grappling with the
‘legible’ for governing (Lingard, Creagh, & Vass, 2011).
consequences of invasion and colonisation, is different
Such measurements have a direct impact on higher
from the poverty of recent immigrant groups.’
education policy for when ‘we are required to report,
Critically, identity is not static. Individuals shape
count, are funded, and held accountable for something,
and reshape their sense of self over the life course and
it starts to matter a lot’ (Wheelahan et al., 2003, p. 41).
education is a key part in this narrative process (Goodson
However, in pursuit of numbers at the aggregate level,
et al., 2010). Prior research exists into the construction
true educational disadvantage may be obscured. Mapping
of student identity (cf. Moss & Pittaway, 2010; Yannuzzi &
educational inequalities in detail, rather than in aggregate
Martin, 2014); however, these are difficult to incorporate
‘can facilitate strategies in pursuit of smaller changes at
in their current abstractions. In effect, they present the
many points, rather than all points at once (and hence in
exact opposite problem to the problem that currently
none)’ (Marginson, 2011, p. 34). In order to achieve this,
exists.
higher
researchers and policymakers need to more fully engage
education disadvantage in broad, aggregated terms. These
with how the (prospective) students themselves have
are relatively easy to measure and track longitudinally,
experienced, and understand, educational disadvantage.
Contemporary
policy
understands
however they are manifestly inadequate for purpose.
Here, the need for a rigorous, systematic approach to
Conversely, emerging theories of student identity are
mapping disaggregated disadvantage is crucial. Simply to
more accurate and dynamic however extremely difficult
call for the ‘voice’ of the student to be heard and appreciated
to enact effectively within an institution, let alone across
might exacerbate, rather than ameliorate disadvantage.This
an entire sector. There is however, potential in exploiting
is because the evidence suggests students from advantaged
a peculiarity of Australian higher education financing;
backgrounds possess greater ability to harness their social
one which has arisen as a consequence of the creation of
and cultural capital/networks to improve their position
the Higher Education Contribution Scheme (HECS, now
within a competitive system. For example, policies designed
known as HELP – the Higher Education Loan Program).
to facilitate the recognition of prior formal and informal
Every student graduating with a HELP debt has their higher
learning for the purposes of academic credit frequently
education and taxation data linked, to allow repayment of
contain an emancipatory agenda, by placing greater value
the debt over the long-term. Consequently, this has given
on non-traditional learning experiences (Harris & Cooper,
rise to an extraordinary amount of information spanning
2013). However, it is often the case that more privileged
the higher education spectrum from prior socio-economic
students are better able to exploit social networks to gain
disadvantage to long-term, post-graduation outcomes.
‘knowledge-rich’ employment. If acts of identity are simply
Coupled with the relatively detailed demographic data,
about codifying a student’s experiences in an analogous
this creates the possibility for constructing ‘meso’ levels
fashion, students with high cultural capital and some (but
44
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
relatively lower) levels of disadvantage might perversely benefit the most (cf. Kaufman & Gabler, 2004) Understanding acts of identity is about exploring the diverse nature of educational disadvantage in greater detail and frequency, in order to better inform policy design.The more we generate complex and intersecting data sets that track cohorts over extended periods of time, the greater the need to understand what it is that we are searching for within them. This will only occur when policymakers embrace, rather than avoid, the diversity and complexity of educational disadvantage. Tim Pitman conducts research into higher education policy, with a focus on widening access and participation, at Curtin University, Australia.
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Brennan, J., & Shah, T. (2003). Access to what? Converting educational opportunity into employment opportunity. London: Centre for Higher Education Research and Information, The Open University. Carpenter, P., & Hayden, M. (1993). Improvements in equity in the participation of young people in higher education in Australia during the 1980s. Higher Education, 26(2), 199-216. doi: 10.1007/BF01406952 Chandler, E. (2010). Sidewalk stories: The troubling task of identification. Disability Studies Quarterly, 30(3/4). Clark, Y. (2000). The construction of aboriginal identity in people separated from their families, community, and culture: Pieces of a jigsaw. Australian Psychologist, 35(2), 150-157. doi: 10.1080/00050060008260337 Coates, H., & Krause, K. L. (2005). Investigating Ten Years of Equity Policy in Australian Higher Education. Journal of Higher Education Policy and Management, 27(1), 35-46. doi: 10.1080/13600800500045810 Comber, B. (1998). Problematising ‘background’: (Re) constructing categories in educational research. The Australian Educational Researcher, 25(3), 1-21. doi: 10.1007/bf03219678 Committee on the Future of Tertiary Education in Australia. (1964). Tertiary education in Australia: Report of the Committee on the Future of Tertiary Education in Australia to the Australian Universities Commission (Vol. 1, pp. 270). Canberra: Commonwealth of Australia.
Contact: Tim.pitman@curtin.edu.au
References Anderson, D., Boven, R., Fensham, P., & Powell, J. (1980). Students in Australian higher education: A study of their social composition since the abolition of fees. Canberra: Australian Government Printing Service. Australian Bureau of Statistics. (2010). 4704.0 – The Health and Welfare of Australia’s Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander Peoples, Oct 2010 Retrieved from http://www.abs.gov.au/AUSSTATS/abs@.nsf/ lookup/4704.0Chapter100Oct+2010 Australian Bureau of Statistics. (2013). ABS 6227.0 – Education and Work, Australia, May 2013 Retrieved from http://www.abs.gov.au/ausstats/abs@.nsf/ mf/6227.0 Behrendt, L., Larkin, S., Griew, R., & Kelly, P. (2012). Review of Higher Education Access & Outcomes for Aboriginal and Torres Strait Islander People. Canberra: Department of Innovation. Bessant, J. (1993). Policy paradoxes: the disempowerment of young people under the Labor Government, 1983/ 91. Australian Journal of Social Issues, 28(2), 87-105. Bettinger, E. P., & Long, B. T. (2005). Do Faculty Serve as Role Models? The Impact of Instructor Gender on Female Students. The American Economic Review, 95(2), 152-157. doi: 10.2307/4132808 Biddle, S. (2014). The implications of changing Indigenous status for data linking and population projections. Retrieved 20 March, 2015, from http:// thenumbercruncher.org/2014/12/08/the-implications-of-changing-indigenousstatus-for-data-linking-and-population-projections/ Birrell, B., Edwards, D., & Dobson, I. (2007). The widening gap between demand for and supply of university graduates in Australia. People and Place, 15(2), 72-86. Boliver, V. (2013). How fair is access to more prestigious UK universities? The British Journal of Sociology, 64(2), 344-364. doi: 10.1111/1468-4446.12021 Bourdieu, P., & Wacquant, L. (1992). An invitation to reflexive sociology. Cambridge: Policy Press. Bradbury, B., Norris, K., & Abello, D. (2001). Socio-economic disadvantage and the prevalence of disability. A report prepared by the Social Policy Research Centre, University of New South Wales, for the Victorian Department of Human Services, DisAbility Services. Sydney, NSW: University of New South Wales. Bradley, D., Noonan, P., Nugent, H., & Scales, B. (2008). Review of Australian higher education: Final report. Canberra: Department of Education, Employment and Workplace Relations. vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
V
Connell, R. (1994). Poverty and Education. Harvard Educational Review, 64(2), 125-150. Crosnoe, R., Mistry, R. S., & Elder, G. H. (2002). Economic Disadvantage, Family Dynamics, and Adolescent Enrollment in Higher Education. Journal of Marriage and Family, 64(3), 690-702. doi: 10.1111/j.1741-3737.2002.00690.x Croucher, G., Marginson, S., Norton, A., & Wells, J. (2013). The Dawkins Revolution: 25 years on. Melbourne: Melbourne University Press. Dawkins, J. (1988). Higher education: a policy statement. Canberra: Australian Government Publishing Service. Department of Education. (2014). Completion rates of domestic bachelor students 2005 – 2012: A cohort analysis. Canberra: Department of Education. Department of Education, Employment and Workplace Relations. (2008). Undergraduate Applications, Offers and Acceptances 2008. Canberra: Department of Education Employment and Workplace Relations. Department of Education, Employment and Workplace Relations. (2009). Undergraduate Applications, Offers and Acceptances 2009. Canberra: DIICCSRTE. Department of Education, Employment and Workplace Relations. (2011). Undergraduate Applications, Offers and Acceptances 2011. Canberra: DEEWR. Department of Employment, Education and Training. (1990). A fair chance for all. Canberra: Australian Government Printing Service. Department of Industry Innovation Climate Change Science Research and Tertiary Education. (2010). Undergraduate Applications, Offers and Acceptances 2010. Canberra: DIICCSRTE. Department of Industry Innovation Climate Change Science Research and Tertiary Education. (2013). The demand driven system: undergraduate applications and offers, February 2013. Retrieved from http:// www.innovation.gov.au/highereducation/ResourcesAndPublications/ HigherEducationPublications/HigherEducationReports/Documents/ UndergraduateApplicationsOffers2013.pdf Dobson I.R. & Skuja, E. (2005). Secondary schooling, tertiary entry ranks and university performance. People & Place, 13(1), 53-62. Freeman, K. (1997). Increasing African Americans’ Participation in Higher Education: African American High-School Students’ Perspectives. The Journal of Higher Education, 68(5), 523-550. doi: 10.2307/2959945
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
45
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Gale, T., & Densmore, K. (2000). Just schooling: Exploration in the cultural politics of teaching. Buckingham, UK: Open University Press. Gale, T., & Tranter, D. (2011). Social justice in Australian higher education policy: an historical and conceptual account of student participation. Critical Studies in Education, 52(1), 29-46. doi: 10.1080/17508487.2011.536511 Gidley, J. M., Hampson, G. P., Wheeler, L., & Bereded-Samuel, E. (2010). From Access to Success: An Integrated Approach to Quality Higher Education Informed by Social Inclusion Theory and Practice. Higher Education Policy, 23(1), 123147. doi: http://dx.doi.org/10.1057/hep.2009.24 Goodson, I., Biesta, G., Tedder, M., & Adair, N. (2010). Narrative Learning. New York: Routledge. Graduate Careers Australia. (2014). Graduate salaries 2013: A report on the earnings of new Australian graduates in their first full-time employment. Melbourne: Graduate Careers Australia Ltd. Harris, J., & Cooper, L. (2013). Recognition of prior learning: exploring the ‘knowledge question’. International Journal of Lifelong Education, 32(4), 447-463. Jacobs, N., & Harvey, D. (2005). Do parents make a difference to children’s academic achievement? Differences between parents of higher and lower achieving students. Educational Studies, 31(4), 431-448. doi:10.1080/03055690500415746 James, R. (2007). Social equity in a mass, globalised higher education environment: The unresolved issue of widening access to university. Paper presented at the Faculty of Education Dean’s Lecture Series 2007, Centre for the Study of Higher Education, University of Melbourne. http://www.cshe.unimelb. edu.au/downloads/Richard%20James,%20Dean%27s%20Lecture%20Series%20 Sept2007.pdf James, R., Baldwin, G., Coates, H., Krause, K.-L., & McInnis, C. (2004). Analysis of equity groups in higher education. Retrieved from http://www.dest.gov.au/NR/ rdonlyres/DBDE717B-6367-4847-A091-BD85FC6E0D4A/2391/equity_report.pdf Karabel, J. (2005). The chosen: The hidden history of admission and exclusion at Harvard, Yale and Princeton. Boston: Houghton Mifflin Company. Kaufman, J., & Gabler, J. (2004). Cultural capital and the extracurricular activities of girls and boys in the college attainment process. Poetics, 32(2), 145168. doi: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.poetic.2004.02.001 Konur, O. (2006). Teaching disabled students in higher education. Teaching in Higher Education, 11(3), 351-363. doi: 10.1080/13562510600680871 Lingard, B., Creagh, S., & Vass, G. (2011). Education policy as numbers: data categories and two Australian cases of misrecognition. Journal of Education Policy, 27(3), 315-333. doi: 10.1080/02680939.2011.605476 Marginson, S. (1993). Education and public policy in Australia. Melbourne: Cambridge University Press. Marginson, S. (2011). Equity, status and freedom: A note on higher education. Cambridge Journal of Education, 41(1), 23-36. Marks, G. (2009). The Social effects of the Australian Higher Education Contribution Scheme (HECS). Higher Education, 57(1), 71-84. doi: 10.1007/ s10734-008-9133-5 Marks, G., McMillan, J., & Hillman, K. (2001). Tertiary entrance performance: The role of student background and school factors. LSAY Research Reports, 24. Martin, L. (1994). Equity and General Performance Indicators in Higher Education. Canberra: Australian Government Publishing Service. Moss, T., & Pittaway, S. (2013). Student identity construction in online teacher education: a narrative life history approach. International Journal of Qualitative Studies in Education, 26(8), 1004-1018. doi:10.1080/09518398.2 012.725139 Osborne, M. (2003). Increasing or Widening Participation in Higher Education? – a European overview. European Journal of Education, 38(1), 5-24. doi: 10.1111/1467-3435.00125
46
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Pitman, T. (2013). ‘Miraculous exceptions’: what can autobiography tell us about why some disadvantaged students succeed in higher education? Higher Education Research & Development, 32(1), 30-42. doi: 10.1080/07294360.2012.750278 Pitman, T., & Koshy, P. (2014). A framework for measuring equity performance in higher education: draft framework document V1.6. Perth: National Centre for Student Equity in Higher Education. Pitman, T., Koshy, P., & Phillimore, J. (2014). Does accelerating access to higher education lower its quality? The Australian experience. Higher Education Research & Development, 1-15. doi: 10.1080/07294360.2014.973385 Richardson, S., Bennett, D. & Roberts, L. (2016) Investigating the Relationship Between Equity and Graduate Outcomes in Australia. Report submitted to the National Centre for Student Equity in Higher Education (NCSEHE), Curtin University: Perth. Robst, J., Keil, J., & Russo, D. (1998). The effect of gender composition of faculty on student retention. Economics of Education Review, 17(4), 429-439. doi: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/S0272-7757(97)00049-6 Sheldon, D., & Gottschalk, P. (1986). Do Rising Tides Lift All Boats? The Impact of Secular and Cyclical Changes on Poverty. The American Economic Review, 76(2), 405-410. doi: 10.2307/1818805 Stevens, P. A. J. (2007). Researching Race/Ethnicity and Educational Inequality in English Secondary Schools: A Critical Review of the Research Literature between 1980 and 2005. Review of Educational Research, 77(2), 147-185. doi: 10.2307/4624892 Trow, M. (1974). Problems in the Transition from Elite to Mass Higher Education. In OECD (Ed.), Policies for Higher Education (pp. 1-55). Paris: OECD. Trow, M. (2000). From Mass Higher Education to Universal Access: The American Advantage. Minerva, 37(4), 303-328. doi: 10.1023/A:1004708520977 Walton, J., Priest, N., Kowal, E., White, F., Brickwood, K., Fox, B., & Paradies, Y. (2014). Talking culture? Egalitarianism, color-blindness and racism in Australian elementary schools. Teaching and Teacher Education, 39(0), 112122. doi: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.tate.2014.01.003 Wheelahan, L. (2009a). Do educational pathways contribute to equity in tertiary education in Australia? Critical Studies in Education, 50(3), 261-275. Wheelahan, L. (2009b). What kind of access does VET provide to higher education for low SES students? Not a lot. Paper presented at the National Centre for Student Equity in Higher Education Launch & Forum Adelaide. http:// w3.unisa.edu.au/hawkeinstitute/ncsehe/student-equity-forum-2009/wheelahanwhat-kind-of-access.pdf Wheelahan, L., Dennis, N., Firth, J., Miller, P., Newton, D., Pascoe, S., & Veenker, P. (2003). Recognition of Prior Learning: Policy and practice in Australia. Southern Cross University. Yannuzzi, T. J., & Martin, D. (2014). Voice, identity, and the organizing of student experience: managing pedagogical dilemmas in critical classroom discussions. Teaching in Higher Education, 19(6), 709-720. doi:10.1080/13562517.2014. 901963 Zepke, N., & Leach, L. (2005). Integration and adaptation: Approaches to the student retention and achievement puzzle. Active Learning in Higher Education, 6(1), 46-59. doi: 10.1177/1469787405049946 Ziersch, A. M., Gallaher, G., Baum, F., & Bentley, M. (2011). Responding to racism: Insights on how racism can damage health from an urban study of Australian Aboriginal people. Social Science & Medicine, 73(7), 1045-1053. doi: http://dx.doi.org/10.1016/j.socscimed.2011.06.058 Zimdars, A. (2010). Fairness and undergraduate admission: a qualitative exploration of admissions choices at the University of Oxford. Oxford Review of Education, 36(3), 307-323. doi: 10.1080/03054981003732286
Widening participation in higher education: a play in five acts Tim Pitman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol This study investigated university student activism from both a theoretical and applied perspective. The aims were to explore some of the elements that might enable or constrain student activism and to facilitate the students’ opportunity to act on an issue of their choice. The three elements of self-efficacy, group work, and time were reviewed in the literature and used as a framework to gather data, the collection of which was completed in three sequential phases: a questionnaire, interviews, and an action research project. Sixty questionnaires were returned and, from these, eight students were interviewed and engaged in the action research project. Results from the questionnaire indicated that students were quite time poor with the median student spending more hours per week working than studying. Further results from the questionnaire as well as the interviews and action research project suggested that the element of self-efficacy had less of an effect on students’ activism than did group work or time, both of which were enabling when present and constraining when absent. Keywords: student activism, student politics, civic education
Introduction
The Melbourne Declaration on Educational Goals for Young Australians, a joint declaration by all state and
This study explored the topic of university student
territory Ministers of Education describes ‘active and
activism. The main research question posed was: what
informed citizens’ who ‘work for the common good, in
are some of the elements that enable or constrain
particular sustaining and improving natural and social
students’ activism? The Encyclopedia of Activism and
systems’ (Barr et al., 2008, p. 9), and The Shape of the
Social Justice states that while activism is not well
Australian Curriculum: Civics and Citizenship refers to
defined, it ‘is action on behalf of a cause, action that
‘preparation of active and empowered citizens includ[ing]
goes beyond what is conventional or routine’ (Martin,
opportunities for students to…actively engage in practical
2007, p. 19). Actions which are considered conventional
citizenship activities within schools, in the community and
or routine may be relative and difficult to define and
online’ (Australian Curriculum Assessment and Reporting
so act to obscure a clearer definition; for actions which
Authority, 2012, p. 5). Note that there is no contradiction
are ordinary and acceptable in one time or place might
between ‘working for the common good’ or ‘actively
be plainly disallowed in others – universal suffrage, for
engaging in practical citizenship activities’ and engaging
example. Some important Australian educational policy
in action which is not routine. The length to which some
can be interpreted as favouring this study. For instance,
environmentalists go to protect the natural world, which
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
47
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
sustains all of life, serves as an obvious example and many
responding to a genuine demand of the youth whom they
others abound. The emphasis in both documents is on
serve (Matthews, 2001). Moreover,Taft and Gordon (2013)
action and an active citizenry.
argue that many youth activists recognise this insincerity
The International Civic and Citizenship Education Study
and view youth councils as elitist and as a tactic for
(ICCS) (International Association for the Evaluation of
mitigating youth participation. Vromen and Collin (2010)
Educational Achievement, 2013), the largest international
concur and argue that youth political participation has
study of civic and citizenship education ever conducted
usually been formal in structure and excludes many
(p. 5), found considerable variation with the content and
students’ voices. Instead they recommend political
method of civic and citizenship education both within
authorities seek out young people’s places of expression
and across the thirty-eight participating countries, but one
and try to include their voices in more informal and fun
of the central outcomes of civic and citizenship education
ways than has traditionally been done and create policies
named is ‘prepar[ing] young people…to be informed and
to make this effective. Bessant (2003, 2004) also agrees and
active citizens’ (p. 9). Given this outcome and the range
concludes that despite much rhetoric about increasing
of content and conduct considered in the ICCS, student
youth political participation, the policies promoted have
activism, at least as it has been conceived in this study, fits
been to increase the governance of, rather than by, young
quite well within that scope and bears squarely on that
people. Her suggestion is to make youth participation
outcome.Yet, although Australia has sufficient educational
effective through further policy reform which, while not
policy to promote active citizenship, university teacher-
unimportant, overlooks the fact that a number of avenues
training programs do not necessarily address this aspect
of political participation are already available to people of
of the curriculum well (Donnison, 2004), nor is there
all ages through activism and direct action, just as Vromen
a consensus on what this might entail (Peterson &
and Coleman’s (2011) treatment of GetUp shows.
Knowles, 2009). The aim of this study was to provide an
In trying to discover some important elements
opportunity for students to engage with a political, social,
enabling or constraining student activism, the field of
economic, or environmental issue of their choice, and in
social psychology provides a robust research tradition
so doing, answer the research question set out above.
on the causes and conditions of protest specifically (see for example van Stekelenburg & Klandermans, 2013),
Background
as well as collective action generally (see for example Klandermans, van der Toorn, & van Stekelenburg, 2008;
Much of the research on student activism is descriptive
van Zomeren, Postmes, & Spears, 2008). However, this field
in nature and seeks to report or at best explain some of
of research has at least two major, and related, differences
its features (see for example Barcan, 2011; Darby, 2001;
from the study in this article: (i) the purpose of the research
Dominguez, 2009; Robertson, 2013; Sankaran & Chng,
does not attempt to facilitate activist engagement, but
2012). In reviewing the literature on youth, but not
merely to observe and explain the elements of social and
necessarily student, political participation, Fyfe (2009)
political movements, and (ii) it has a strong commitment
contends that most research in this domain has been
to a positivist research paradigm with an emphasis on
confined to conventional political actions such as voting,
measurement, quantitative data analysis, prediction,
party campaign work and running for office. In its place
and ‘the thorny issue of causality’ (van Stekelenburg &
he recommends moving toward an understanding of the
Klandermans, 2013, p. 898) (see for example Gould, 1993;
many non-conventional means of political action such as
Kelly & Breinlinger, 1995; Klandermans & Oegema, 1987;
issue-specific protesting as well as new ones like online
Klandermans, Sabucedo, Rodriguez, & de Weerd, 2002;
mobilisation through social media.
Oegema & Klandermans, 1994; Stürmer, Simon, Loewy,
Researchers in the field of political science have considered
number
of
conventional
and
& Jörger, 2003; Tausch & Becker, 2013; van Stekelenburg,
non-
Klandermans, & van Dijk, 2009; van Zomeren, Leach,
conventional means to include youth participation in
& Spears, 2012). However, Gamson’s Talking Politics
politics but many have found the results lacking. For
(1992), which laid a framework of elements of collective
instance, youth councils, one common method of giving
action and which was subsequently used by much social
young people a voice in political matters, have been
psychological research, was based on a qualitative, rather
argued to conceal the large numbers of voices which
than quantitative, analysis of thirty-seven peer group
remain unheard and to be more about assuaging the
conversations. His work, drawing on others before him,
consciences of the adults who set them up, rather than
used the three elements of injustice, or what is sometimes
48
a
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
referred to as grievances, agency, or what is sometimes
created entirely as an extra-curricular activity and it was
referred to as efficacy, and identity. Each of these three
made very clear that the students’ participation or lack
elements was used in order to describe and explain
thereof would not affect their grades in any way. As such,
people’s participation in social movements.Yet, Gamson’s
the students who participated did so entirely of their own
work also differs from point (i) above and he states
volition, and many chose not to.
‘[t]hose of us still located in academia continue to struggle
The students in the study were undergraduates
to make the university a resource for social movements’
enrolled in a Bachelor of Education (Primary) program
(Gamson, 2005, p. 278).
and they ranged in age from late teens to their forties. In
Within the field of education there are a few studies
addition to the HSIE class described above some students
which have a similar aim and methodology to this one. For
were taking a class called English Issues. A large majority
example, working within a high school context, Bencze,
of the students were female, which is to be expected
Sperling, and Carter (2012) investigated how teachers
given the current demographics of the Australian primary
can try to enable their science students to use their own
pre-service teacher cohort (McGrath & Sinclair, 2013).
research to inform their activism for a socio-scientific
The study was undertaken in a regional university in
issue. Their findings suggest that a countless number
Southeast Queensland which values, among other things,
of elements may affect students’ activism, but focussed
advancing human rights, pursuing social, economic, and
on
curriculum
policy
statements, school culture, teacher characteristics, and student-generated
research
findings. Marri and Walker (2008) also investigated ways of enabling students’ activism
environmental sustainability,
Researchers in the field of political science have considered a number of conventional and non-conventional means to include youth participation in politics but many have found the results lacking.
acting in a fair and equitable manner, and engaging with the
community
scholarship
through
(Council
of
Southern Cross University, 2014, p. 3). As such, the
at a high school level, though
university
their study was with students
positioned to support this
was
well
of colour and investigated how they could engage them
kind of study since the author expected many of the
in activism associated with race-related issues. Though
issues around which students would mobilise would
their study did not specifically seek to discover what
address these values.
elements might enable or constrain students’ activism,
Data collection in this study proceeded in three
they give the following advice to anyone attempting to
sequential phases: (i) a questionnaire, (ii) semi-structured
develop young activists: include an initiation component
interviews, and (iii) an action research project. An
where students discuss the issues they are interested in, a
information sheet describing the study was given to
history component reviewing the role that young people
students in class with the thrust of the description being
have had in social movements, a reflection component
that students were to involve themselves in the resolution
where students brainstorm ideas about how to address
of a social, political, economic, or environmental issue
their problems, and an action component where they
of their choice with the help of the author and, where
implement their ideas.
overlapping interests occurred, other students as well. There was a certain tension in the research design between
Methodology & data collection
allowing the students to choose the issue in which they were interested and around which they would mobilise,
The author has taught Human Society and Its Environments
and encouraging the students to work with others as part
(HSIE) to primary school pre-service teachers for about
of a group. Choosing the issue which concerned most
two and a half years. This class is essentially a social
students and trying to encourage the entire group to
sciences amalgam and includes topics such as civics and
mobilise around it would have been effective in creating
active citizenship, values education, and discrimination.
a large group that could work together, though many
Tutorial discussions are the furthest extent of engagement
members might not have cared much about the issue
with the issues covered in the class and for this reason,
chosen. After some deliberation it was decided that the
the author wanted to try and create more opportunities
study would be most authentic if each student named the
for students to act on them. However, because the author
issue in which they were most interested and the group
had little influence on the course syllabus, this study was
work presumed necessary for effective activism facilitated
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
49
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
by suggesting that students with similar interests join
network and as a means for sharing their experiences and
together or with existing groups pursuing each of their
learning from one another, particularly in the cases where
issues (cf. Stenhouse & Jarrett, 2012). The author also
the issues in which students were interested overlapped.
attempted to create solidarity amongst his students by
Following this, many individual emails, phone calls, and
insisting on learning and using all of his students’ names
occasional face-to-face exchanges were made between the
and by encouraging his students to do the same with the
author and the students in order to chart their progress.
help of name tags.
The author kept an action research journal as a means of
About 110 questionnaires were given out at the end of
recording events, conversations, and observations (Cohen
class and completed at home where necessary. Questions
et al., 2007, p. 300), and for the purpose of maintaining
asked about how the students spent their time during the
the students’ anonymity, used pseudonyms throughout
week, their previous activist experience, whether or not
this paper.
they believed in their self-efficacy, and any social, political, economic, or environmental issues they were concerned
Elements influencing students’ activism
about. The results from the questionnaires were used to winnow the respondents down to a smaller group to
As some of the literature reviewed above suggests, myriad
interview by case-sampling (Flick, 2010, p. 115). This also
possible elements might enable or constrain student
was a research design decision which was made with
activism. This study focussed on three however: self-
much deliberation. As much as the author would have
efficacy, group work, and time.
preferred to work with all of his students in trying to resolve each of their chosen issues, in practice this would
Self-efficacy
have been impossible due to time and energy constraints
Self-efficacy may play an important role in helping to
(cf. Stenhouse & Jarrett, 2012). As a result seven students
explain why people engage in activism since we might
were selected to interview, with one additional student
expect that those who believe in their power to effect
interviewed during the action research project, for a total
change will be the ones more likely to do so. Bandura
of eight interviews. The students were chosen so as to
(1977, p. 193) refers to self-efficacy as an individual’s
provide a variety of answers from the questionnaire. In
conviction that one’s behaviour can produce expected
other words, some interviewees had a fair bit of previous
outcomes. However, Velasquez and LaRose (2015)
activist experience, but one had none, and while some
emphasise the importance of distinguishing between
believed in their self-efficacy others were not sure.
self- versus collective-efficacy since many political actions
During the interviews students were mostly asked ‘why’
are made en masse rather than as an individual effort.
questions about their responses on the questionnaire, as
Their main results suggest that online collective political
well as other questions related to this study to try and
activism is better predicted by efficacy at the collective,
ascertain the students’ reasons for acting the way they
rather than individual level. For the purposes of this
did or for believing what they did. The interviews were
study, although online activity was not a central focus, the
audio recorded, the conversations transcribed, and the
contrast between individual- and collective-efficacy was
transcripts member checked (Cohen, Manion, & Morrison,
nonetheless investigated via the element of group work,
2007, p. 136).
which is discussed below.
These same interviewees then engaged in an action
Wollman and Stouder (1991) also dissected the concept
research project to try and resolve the social, political,
of efficacy, but in their study did so along the lines of
economic, or environmental issue of their choice and
overall, political, and situation-specific efficacy, arguing
to provide an opportunity to compare some of the
that beliefs in general life efficacy do not necessarily accord
theoretical results from the questionnaires and interviews
with those in the political sphere. They further contend
with the practical ones which arose in the action research
that specific political behaviour will be better predicted
phase. This was important since what students say they
by a belief in the efficacy of that particular behaviour.
are willing to do in theory may not be what they actually
This is a sensible argument, though the deterministic
do in practice (van Stekelenburg & Klandermans, 2013,
and quantitative approach they apply with the goal of
pp. 898-899). This began by the author sending out a
prediction, when taken to the logical extreme, seems to
group email priming the students for the action research
imply that the best predictor of a given behaviour would
phase, inviting them to ‘reply all’ in solidarity with the
involve making the most highly specified map of the
other students involved so as to use the group as a support
world to account for every possible factor influencing the
50
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 1: Results from the Questionnaire Regarding Students’ Belief in Self-efficacy Statement I am an important contributor to society and I personally make a difference.
Agree 50%
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
action research project answered on their questionnaires that they believed in their self-efficacy; Neil and Elle
Disagree
Unsure
both joined GetUp and signed petitions relating to their
6%
44%
respective causes, and Brian became vegetarian to help promote animal rights, which could be construed as a very broad boycott. However, Winona had also answered that she believed in her self-efficacy, but did nothing during the
participants’ behaviour. What Wollman and Stouder seem
action research phase even though she spoke passionately
to be driving at by investigating such situation-specific
about her chosen issue of littering during the interview:
efficacy are the reasons an individual acts in a certain way and they admit that many other factors must be addressed than those investigated in their study to fully understand an individual’s action. Consequently, as described above, most of the questions asked in the interview phase of this study were ‘why’ questions. Results from the questionnaire with regard to the students’ belief in their ability to cause change in society
Winona: I haven’t even spoken to you about putting this into anything but I already feel like… burning up. Author: What do you mean? Winona: A feeling of burning up, like as in, doing something… instead of just sitting here it’s like a fire that you get – like when I thought about doing a protest about littering.
– their self-efficacy – are shown in Table 1. Although sixty
Reasons for Winona’s lack of engagement during the
questionnaires were returned, this part of the study was
action research phase appeared to be mostly due to lack of
only completed by fifty students, perhaps because this
time, which is examined below. What was most revealing
table was on the back of the last page of the questionnaire
about the relationship between self-efficacy and activism
and some did not think to look there.
however came from the interview with John. He had a
Only half of the students believe that they are an
range of previous activist experience but indicated in his
‘important contributor to society’ and ‘personally make a
questionnaire that he was unsure about his self-efficacy.
difference.’This may have worrying consequences for the
Throughout his interview he maintained his belief that
prospects of activism since if they do not believe they
there is not much one person can do, not only for the
can make a difference one might expect that they will
refugee issue about which he had done nothing, but for
not bother trying. This is perhaps even more concerning
those issues in which he had engaged in various forms of
since these students are studying to become teachers and
activism, each connected to either a high school being
might then, when they step into their occupation, be less
built near his home or a council’s proposal to demolish a
inclined to think critically, struggle for social change, and
cricket club at which he said he had played for many years.
more readily accept the status quo. However, half of the
These actions included writing to a newspaper, calling in
students in this study who agreed with the statement in
to a radio show, attending a public meeting, participating
Table 1, and thus believe in their self-efficacy, had never
in a march, as well as signing petitions online and on
engaged in any form of activism, other than signing a
paper. When asked if any of the activist measures he had
petition. Conversely, all three students (six per cent) who
taken affected the council’s decision he stated:
disagreed with the statement, and thus do not believe in their self-efficacy, answered that they had participated in some form of activism beyond simply signing a petition; those actions were participating in a protest, calling in to a radio show, and participating in a march. And yet
I’d say it might have swayed them a little bit, but we all know that with councils that if they’ve made up their mind they’ll go through with it anyway, so it’s just having people there that are against the council’s decision to destroy it…there was enough people there to stop it.
again, the one student who had participated in one of the most extreme forms of activism – a blockade – answered
Thus here, as well as in other parts of his interview, John’s
‘unsure’ to the statement. Hence, the questionnaire
belief is that efficacy does not come from an individual, but
phase produced some doubt as to how strongly self-
from a group, which supports the group work element
efficacy might enable, or through lack thereof constrain, a
considered below.When asked if one person could make a
student’s activism.
difference by starting such a group John replied:
Additional light was shed on this element during the interview and action research phases. All three students who actually engaged in some form of activism during the vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
It’d be hard to try and find people that were as passionate as you to help towards that, and it’s also t r y i n g to find the time between work and study, because a
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
51
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
group thing, everyone must be involved and you have to have one day at a certain time where everybody can get there and everyone can lobby, everyone can press their opinions…it’s hard to try and find the right people, the time between work and study and personal life.
Civil and Political Rights, to which Australia is a signatory
In addition to the importance of group work, here
associate to effect change.
(Australian Human Rights Commission, 2013). Though there may be legitimate circumstances for banning the association of people, such as in wartime, activists must be mindful of the need to preserve their right to
John points out another element mentioned in the
Most of the interactions between the author and the
literature below – time. Although it may be hard work as
students in this study took place outside of class via
John suggested, he is arguing that what is necessary to
email or phone, but there was nonetheless an important
create social change is for enough people with a similar
observation made by the author in class which impacted
interest to find the time to come together and express
on the group work element of this study. Without
their opposition. To a lesser extent, Mandy’s beliefs and
exception, despite insisting on students using name tags
experiences were the same: ‘I’ve just never been a big
in the tutorials, by the end of the semester not a single
believer of…one person can change…everything, like it
student knew the names of all the other students in their
definitely takes a lot more than just one, and I don’t feel
tutorial group. He noted the following exchange in his
like I could personally make a big difference.’
action research journal:
Thus the triangulation of the results of the questionnaire, the students’ ideas expressed in their interviews, and their actions in the action research phase suggests a conflicting
Author: How come you guys don’t know each other’s names?
engagement with an issue through activism.
Student: Because we just come here to class and then leave. There’s nowhere else to go and nothing else going on.
Group work
This likely has adverse effects on the element of group
relationship between a belief in one’s self-efficacy and
As mentioned above, another element which may
work and the student body would appear to be quite
affect activism may simply be called ‘group work.’ In
fragmented. Many results from the questionnaire and
short, we might expect that social change is unlikely
interviews showed that the students are politically aware,
to come from individuals, but instead by groups of
socially conscious, and environmentally concerned,
like-minded people working together. In writing about
yet they are not interested in being part of, nor do
how to understand the world and stay informed, world-
they behave as, an integrated body qua students. This
renowned political activist Noam Chomsky writes: ‘[i]
is not to say that the students may not be part of other
t’s true that the task is somewhere between awfully
groups which are mobilising for change on the issues
difficult and utterly hopeless for an isolated individual.
about which they are concerned, but it seems clear, at
But it’s feasible for anyone who is part of a cooperative
least from this study, that the ‘student’ aspect of student
community’ (Chomsky, 1999, para. 1). Van Stekelenburg
activism, does not constitute a cohesive group which
and Klandermans (2013, p. 890) concur when they write,
might be able to mobilise for some collective interest – it
citing several studies, that ‘the more people identify with
is far too disintegrated. Furthermore, none of the students
a group the more they are inclined to protest on behalf of
responded to the group email sent to initiate the action
that group.’ The need to band together to create change
research phase, though everyone eventually replied to
may seem obvious, but laws prohibiting such association
emails which were sent to them individually. Also, as
are not without precedent and in recent times the
indicated above, the only activism in the action research
Queensland government’s Vicious Lawless Association
phase involved Neil and Elle, both of whom joined GetUp
Disestablishment Act 2013 is one example. The law is
to sign petitions related to their respective causes, and
meant to target bikie gangs but defines an association
Brian who became vegetarian. And although Brian’s
quite broadly in Section 3 as, among other things, ‘any…
decision might appear independent of others, he spoke
group of 3 or more persons by whatever name called,
at length in this interview about a range of actions he had
whether associated formally or informally and whether
taken in concert with other animal rights activists. These
the group is legal or illegal.’This has caused the Australian
included helping his sisters, who look after rescue dogs
Human Rights Commission President, Professor Gillian
and rehabilitate birds, attending rallies to oppose animal
Triggs, to criticise the law on the basis of the freedom of
circuses, and working with others to remove flyers and
association contained in the International Covenant of
signs promoting animal circuses.
52
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
suggested that group work may enable constrain it when absent. When asked what strategies she thought would help
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
Table 2: Results from the Questionnaire Regarding Students’ Time
Other results from the interviews also student activism when present and
N
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
or more, and almost one fifth working twenty-one hours or more. Perhaps not surprisingly, sixty-three per cent reported
Hours Spent Working per Week
that they were often overwhelmed by
Hours
replied: ‘maybe, researching into local…
0
5
Statistics’ Survey of Education and Work
they’re not projects I guess, but local
1-4
2
showing that of all fifteen- to seventy-
groups that do…something about that
5-9
9
four-year-olds who are studying for a
and …get them involved in a way.’ Mandy
10-14
9
non-school qualification, some 2.2 million
15-19
20
demonstration:‘like a big gathering of…a
20 or more
15
whole group of people that believe in
Total:
60
the…common good…that can definitely
* Median is 17 hours per week
correlated with students’ likeliness to
change something, and I felt like I was
Hours Spent Studying per Week
engage in activism, some studies, such
part of something, I felt like I was really contributing to something.’And in adding
0
0
Andrew, & Davidson, 2012) and business
to the statements he had made earlier
1-4
1
(Richardson, Evans, & Gbadamosi, 2014)
5-9
9
gave a similar reply as she related this to her own experience of taking part in a
comparing self- versus collective-efficacy, when asked if one person can make a
No. of Students
everything they had to do. This trend has
get students active about an issue,Winona
continued with the Australian Bureau of
students, over two thirds, or about sixtyseven per cent are working either full- or part-time (Australian Bureau of Statistics, 2015). Although these statistics are not
as in nursing (Salamonson, Everett, Koch,
show
that
working
while
studying
negatively impacts on students’ study
difference John stated: ‘it won’t make as
10-14
20
time and Grade Point Average. From this,
much difference as a group or an activist
15-19
12
we might surmise that any other activity,
lobby or anything along those lines but…
20 or more
18
including engaging in activism, will suffer
one person can do something, but it
Total:
60
as students juggle both work and study.
won’t be much.’ The theme expressed by these students seems to be that, alone, one person is rather impotent
* Median is 14.5 hours per week
In this vein, Dominguez (2009) drew the ironic conclusion that many student
Leisure Hours per Week
activists adopt the neoliberal ideology
but, when joined by many others, is able
0
0
and behaviour of ‘time management’ and
to exert political pressure and create
1-4
7
‘multitasking’ in order to include activism
social change. In short, those who acted
5-9
19
in their already busy schedules, even as
or described previous actions did so or
10-14
16
they try to mobilise against its effects.
15-19
7
described doing so with others; nobody decided to work alone.
20 or more
11
Time
Total:
60
That time is needed to do anything is
* Median is 12 hours per week
obvious, and no less so for a student,
that undergraduate students struggled to find time to participate in a program to implement social change. From this we might expect that students would be hard pressed to find the time to engage in any
teacher, or any responsible and engaged citizen to actively involve themselves in a political, social or
Stenhouse and Jarrett (2012) also found
sort of activism, and if they did, to only a limited degree.
environmental issue.Yet, university students and staff alike
Results from the questionnaire with regard to how the
are becoming decreasingly able to mobilise for change due
students spend their time during the semester are shown
to lack of time; academics who are underpaid need to find
in Table 2.
external income streams (Nicholas, 2003) and students
The number of hours the median student spent
with increasing debt levels also need to find ways to create
working each week supports the findings reviewed in the
an income (Hall, 2010). In fact, a report by the Australian
literature.What is most striking in these results however is
Commonwealth Department of Education, Science and
that the median student spends more time working each
Training (McInnis & Hartley, 2002, p. xi) found that
week than studying. These students are enrolled in full-
undergraduate students work an average of fifteen hours
time study and yet they work only part-time. That such
a week, with almost forty per cent working sixteen hours
descriptors do not accurately reflect the relative amount
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
53
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
of time spent on each activity may belie a change in the
page, it should be fine! Struggling to get my assignment in
traditional nature of undergraduate student life.
so need to finish it but I’m sure it’s all OK!’ The record of
A couple of results from the interviews and action research project discussed above have already touched on the role that time may play in enabling student activism when present or constraining it when absent. Other excerpts from the interviews supporting this relationship follow: Winona: I need to want to do more but, at the same time, you know, it’s hard being a uni student, working two jobs, not really having any spare time as it is, but wanting to be able to help in some way… Elle: I’ve never really, or not recently, because I seem to be on the go so much… sat down and sort of gone, alright, where can I sort of time manage to focus my energies on this [issue of Aboriginal communities]? And I guess when you’ve got a young family a lot of your energy sort of gets taken up with that process… Neil: I currently have two jobs. I’m working at a Chinese take-away place as a delivery driver. I usually do that between ten to twelve hours a week. And then, sometimes they call me in for an after-school care job.
communication with Mandy was similar: Hi Jason, just returning your phone call. I was in a tutorial when you called, so I was unable to answer. I’ve been struggling quite a bit with my work load at the moment. So am focusing on trying to keep on top of all my uni and work commitments, which is proving quite difficult. The triangulation of results from each of the three phases of the study – the questionnaire, the interviews, and the action research project – suggest that students do not have much time to engage in activism due to their work and study loads.
Studying and teaching for active citizenship Mentioned in the introduction were some important education policy documents which indicate that teachers will be expected to prepare students as active citizens.
In the questionnaire, Neil had written that there was
Nowhere in the HSIE course were students told that they
nothing he was doing about any of the issues in which
would be expected to do this so perhaps we should not
he was interested, the reason being ‘don’t know where
be surprised that almost half the students chose not to
to begin.’ When asked to elaborate on his comment in
complete the questionnaire and participate in the study.
the interview he said: ‘it’s just hard to know where to
For those sixty that did, eighteen of the respondents,
start with these things. It’s sort of like…I guess it’s the
or almost a third of them, ticked ‘no’ in response to
complexity…and finding the time, obviously…busy
the question: ‘Are there any environmental, economic,
schedule.’ These comments seem to suggest that lack of
political or social issues that you are concerned about
time adversely affected the students’ ability to engage in
today?’ Added to this disjuncture between education
activism.
and activism was the paucity of issues named on the
During the action research phase of the project some
questionnaire related to education. For the forty-two
records of communication show the influence that
students that responded ‘yes’ to the question above, only
time had on students’ actual participation in activism.
five of them named an education-related issue.These were:
For example, upon the author’s suggestion that she join
‘education about the real world’, ‘education worldwide’,
some groups related to her named causes Barbara replied:
‘deregulation of university fees’, ‘cuts to education’ and
‘Thank you Jason. I will look at those in the near future
‘education system in Australia.’ Whether this was due
when I am not so busy with uni work. Sounds great.’
to selflessness on the part of the students, ignorance
However, this was the last and only bit of communication
of or apathy towards the then current attempts by the
with Barbara during the entire action research phase.
government to pass legislation to deregulate university
Furthermore, Winona sent the following text in response
tuition and cut funding, complete satisfaction with the
to the author’s email suggesting some groups to join
current system of schooling in Australia, or some other
related to her named issues: ‘Hi Jason, I’ve only just got
reason, is uncertain.
home and I’ve got to start roast dinner. I haven’t had time
From these results it appears just as uncertain, doubtful
to check out the links in your emails with assignments
even, whether students draw much of a connection
due the last week. How about I get back to you when I’ve
between education, including their future role as teachers,
had a look?’ However, the only other reply which came
and active citizenship through activism. Knowing
from Winona during the action research phase was in
how inclined to activism students in other disciplines
response to the author’s request to check the transcript
are compared to the students in this study would be
of her interview, which was: ‘Hi Jason, I checked the first
interesting, and a question worth considering. Perhaps
54
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
students majoring in political science are more likely to
no matter how minimal, they are more prone to engage
engage in activism and those in business less.
in activism again in the future.’ This suggests that one
The scant relationship between education and activism
method of fulfilling the educational policy documents
in this study’s sample also appears to have normalised the
cited above in preparing students to be active citizens is
increased cost of studying, and in turn the need for students
to include activism in the syllabus for the HSIE classes in
to work while doing so, and the time they spend engaging
teacher education programs. Pre-service teachers could,
in these activities. The fact that the median student spent
for example, be asked to involve themselves in an issue
more time working each week than studying and that only
of their choice as part of an assessment for the class.
a few listed the cost of education as an issue about which
Of course, this would contravene the approach taken
they were concerned implies that the majority of students
in this study whereby students participated voluntarily
in this sample accept these circumstances. But as some of
outside of class, but voting in Australia is compulsory and
the results from the interviews and action research phase
there is no specific training provided for how to vote
suggest, lack of time impedes students’ ability to engage
‘correctly.’ Furthermore, voting is a relatively passive form
in activism.This can create a positive feedback loop – the
of citizenship activity compared to activism, so perhaps
greater the cost of education, the more students must
the suggestion to include the latter in teacher-training
work, and the less time they have to oppose further
programs is a fair assessment. If we are to move beyond
increases in cost. However, in May 2014 thousands of
mere rhetoric of preparing students to be active citizens,
Australian students took to the streets in opposition to the
it seems reasonable to suggest that such a change would
government’s plan to cut funding to higher education and
be a step in the right direction since, as Saha suggests, this
deregulate university tuition fees, arguing that universities
would increase the likeliness of further activism in future,
should be financed by public, rather than private funding
which in turn would give teachers a base from which to
(ABC, 2014). This was followed with sustained media
work when they go about preparing their own students
coverage about the government’s failed attempt to have
to be active citizens. Doing so would also capitalise on the
the proposed legislation passed by the Senate on not
opportunities for group work which arise naturally in a
one, but two occasions (see for example Clarke, 2015).
classroom setting and students could also be given time
So why were the students in this study so disinterested in
in class to work on or discuss their activism.
the topic? The chance that they would not have known anything about it seems unlikely so perhaps there are
Conclusion
other reasons for their apathy and lack of engagement. Most of the student protests opposing the government’s
This exploratory study was initiated in response to
proposal to deregulate university tuition and cut funding
educational policy in Australia calling for students to be
occurred in Melbourne, Sydney, Brisbane and other large
prepared as active citizens.There is no universal consensus
cities (ABC, 2014). The students in this study however
on what active citizenship might involve and so it is not
were part of a regional university on a relatively small
obvious why activism, at least as it has been defined and
campus. Some of the results from this study suggest that
exemplified in this study, should be excluded. On the
group work is an enabling element for student activism so
contrary, many examples of activist work can be argued
perhaps the relatively small, and as further results showed
to fulfil the role of active citizenship quite well. Preparing
fragmented, student body was unable to coalesce enough
students to be active citizens through activism can thus
organised opposition to make the topic predominate
act as an important, though not exclusive, component
over the other issues students listed on the questionnaire.
of social change. The political, social, economic, and
As Neil stated above, he did not know where to begin
environmental issues which currently face us are as varied
tackling the issues he had listed due to their complexity,
as they are serious and answering the call for active and
as well as lack of time. Organisation for or against certain
informed citizens to address such issues is arguably the
social, political, or other issues can indeed be complex
most important function of the institutions of learning
and take much time and energy. For someone who has
today. The results of this study suggest that the elements
never been involved in activism before knowing where
of group work and time appear to enable student activism
to begin can be daunting, even overwhelming to the
when present and constrain it when absent.The evidence
point of paralysis and continued non-involvement.
related to self-efficacy appeared more conflicting and
However, according to Saha (2004, p. 10) ‘once a person
suggests this element is less significant. Similar studies
has engaged in forms of social and political activism,
which sample students in other disciplines, universities,
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
55
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
age groups, and countries, as well as those which consider other elements which may enable or constrain students’ activism would help to either support or discover limitations to the results found in this study. But even when research addressing such a topic ‘fails’, we can at least seek comfort in having tried to do something about the profusion of issues we face today.
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
org/web/20000608144830/http://zmag.org/ZSustainers/ZDaily/1999-03/ mar_8_1999.htm Clarke, M. (2015, March 17). Senate votes down Government’s university deregulation legislation. Retrieved May 14, 2015, from http://www.abc.net. au/news/2015-03-17/senate-votes-down-legislation-to-uncap-universityfees/6327066 Cohen, L., Manion, L., & Morrison, K. (2007). Research methods in education (6 ed.). New York: Routledge.
Acknowledgement
Council of Southern Cross University. (2014). 2013 Annual Report. Australia: Southern Cross University. Retrieved from http://scu.edu.au/docs/annual_report/ download.php?doc_id=14769&site_id=223&file_ext=.pdf%20-%20229k
This article has been drawn from the results of an honours
Darby, R. (2001). Preaching to the unconverted: Memories of La Trobe’s radical street theatre. Overland, 165, 53-61.
thesis project. For the full results of this study, including the exploration of other elements not discussed in this article, please contact the author at the address below. Jason van Tol is an independent scholar and lives in Byron Bay, NSW. He has taught at several universities in Queensland. His current research is concerned with the potential for citizenship education to contribute to a sustainable society
Dominguez, R. F. (2009). U.S. college student activism during an era of neoliberalism: A qualitative study of students against sweatshops. Australian Educational Research, 36(3), 125-138. Donnison, S. (2004). Discourses for the new millennium: Exploring the cultural models of ‘Y generation’ preservice teachers (Doctoral thesis, Griffith University, Gold Coast, Queensland). Retrieved from https://www120.secure. griffith.edu.au/rch/file/3f1d9a8f-559f-1a61-7fc4-40fba20aa797/1/02Whole.pdf Flick, U. (2010). An introduction to qualitative research. Singapore: SAGE Publications.
Contact: jayveetee@gmail.com
Fyfe, I. (2009). Researching youth political participation in Australia: Arguments for an expanded focus. Youth Studies Australia, 28(1), 37-45.
References
Gamson, W. A. (1992). Talking Politics. Oakleigh: Cambridge University Press.
ABC. (2014, May 22). Students protest against Government plans to overhaul higher education sector. ABC News. Retrieved February 27, 2015, from http:// www.abc.net.au/news/2014-05-21/university-students-rally-against-budgetmeasures/5467044 Australian Bureau of Statistics. (2015). Education and Work, Australia, May 2015. Australian Bureau of Statistics. Retrieved from http://www.abs.gov.au/ AUSSTATS/abs@.nsf/DetailsPage/6227.0May%202015?OpenDocument Australian Curriculum Assessment and Reporting Authority. (2012). The shape of the Australian curriculum: Civics and citizenship. Sydney. Retrieved from http://www.acara.edu.au/verve/_resources/Shape_of_the_Australian_ Curriculum__Civics_and_Citizenship_251012.pdf Australian Human Rights Commission. (2013). Freedoms and rights concerns in QLD bikie laws. Retrieved April 19, 2016, from https://www.humanrights.gov. au/news/stories/freedoms-and-rights-concerns-qld-bikie-laws Bandura, A. (1977). Self-efficacy: Toward a unifying theory of behavioral change. Psychological Review, 84(2), 191-215. Barcan, A. (2011). The arrival of the New Left at Sydney University, 1967-1972. History of Education Review, 40(2), 156-175. Barr, A., Gillard, J., Firth, V., Scrymgour, M., Welford, R., Lomax-Smith, J., . . . Constable, E. (2008). Melbourne declaration on educational goals for young Australians. Melbourne: Ministerial Council on Education, Employment, Training and Youth Affairs. Bencze, L., Sperling, E., & Carter, L. (2012). Students’ research-informed socioscientific activism: Re/visions for a sustainable future. Research in Science Education, 42(1), 129-148. Bessant, J. (2003). Youth participation: A new mode of government. Policy Studies, 24(2/3), 87-100.
Gamson, W. A. (2005). Afterword. In D. Croteau, W. Hoynes, & C. Ryan (Eds.), Rhyming hope and history: Activists, academics, and social movement scholarship (pp. 265-279). Minneapolis, MN: University of Minnesota Press. Gould, R. V. (1993). Collective action and network structure. American Sociological Review, 58(2), 182-196. Hall, R. (2010). The work-study relationship: Experiences of full-time university students undertaking part-time employment. Journal of Education and Work, 23(5), 439-449. International Association for the Evaluation of Educational Achievement. (2013). In J. Ainley, W. Schulz, & T. Friedman (Eds.), ICCS 2009 Encyclopedia: Approaches to civic and citizenship education around the world. Amsterdam: International Association for the Evaluation of Educational Achievement. Kelly, C., & Breinlinger, S. (1995). Identity and injustice: Exploring women’s participation in collective action. Journal of Community & Applied Social Psychology, 5(1), 41-57. Klandermans, B., & Oegema, D. (1987). Potentials, networks, motivations, and barriers: Steps towards participation in social movements. American Sociological Review, 52(4), 519-531. Klandermans, B., Sabucedo, J. M., Rodriguez, M., & de Weerd, M. (2002). Identity processes in collective action participation: Farmers’ identity and farmers’ protest in the Netherlands and Spain. Political Psychology, 23(2), 235-251. Klandermans, B., van der Toorn, J., & van Stekelenburg, J. (2008). Embeddedness and identity: How immigrants turn grievances into action. American Sociological Review, 73(6), 992-1012. Marri, A. R., & Walker, E. N. (2008). “Our leaders are us”: Youth activism in social movements project. Urban Review, 40(1), 5-20.
Bessant, J. (2004). Mixed messages: Youth participation and democratic practice. Australian Journal of Political Science, 39(2), 387-404.
Martin, B. (2007). Activism, social and political. In G. L. Anderson & K. G. Herr (Eds.), Encyclopedia of activism and social justice (pp. 19-27). Thousand Oaks, CA: Sage. Retrieved from https://www.uow.edu.au/~bmartin/ pubs/07Anderson.html
Chomsky, N. (1999). On staying informed and intellectual self-defense. Retrieved May 15, 2015, from ZNet Daily Commentaries: http://web.archive.
Matthews, H. (2001). Citizenship, youth councils and young people’s participation. Journal of Youth Studies, 4(3), 299-318.
56
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
McGrath, K., & Sinclair, M. (2013). More male primary-school teachers? : Social benefits for boys and girls. Gender and Education, 25(5), 531-547. McInnis, C., & Hartley, R. (2002). Managing study and work: The impact of full-time study and paid work on the undergraduate experience in Australian universities. Canberra: Department of Education, Science and Training. Nicholas, P. (2003). Putting the activists back on track. Polemic, 13(1), 59-61. Oegema, D., & Klandermans, B. (1994). Why social movement sympathizers don’t participate: Erosion and nonconversion of support. American Sociological Association, 59(5), 703-722. Peterson, A., & Knowles, C. (2009). Active citizenship: A preliminary study into student teacher understandings. Educational Research, 51(1), 39-59. Richardson, M., Evans, C., & Gbadamosi, G. (2014). The work–study nexus: The challenges of balancing full-time business degree study with a part-time job. Research in Post-Compulsory Education, 19(3), 302-309. Robertson, S. K. (2013). Campus, city, networks and nation: Student-migrant activism as socio-spatial experience in Melbourne, Australia. International Journal of Urban and Regional Research, 37(3), 972-988. Saha, L. (2004). Australian school students and social movement support. Education and Society, 22(1), 5-26. Salamonson, Y., Everett, B., Koch, J., Andrew, S., & Davidson, P. M. (2012). The impact of term-time paid work on academic performance in nursing students: A longitudinal study. International Journal of Nursing Studies, 49(5), 579-585. Sankaran, C., & Chng, H. H. (2012). From pedagogy to activism: The AWARE saga. Australian Feminist Studies, 27(74), 421-437. Stenhouse, V. L., & Jarrett, O. S. (2012). In the service of learning and activism: Service learning, critical pedagogy, and the Problem Solution Project. Teacher Education Quarterly, 39(1), 51-76.
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Taft, J. K., & Gordon, H. R. (2013). Youth activists, youth councils, and constrained democracy. Education, Citizenship and Social Justice, 8(1), 87-100. Tausch, N., & Becker, J. C. (2013). Emotional reactions to success and failure of collective action as predictors of future action intentions: A longitudinal investigation in the context of student protests in Germany. British Journal of Social Psychology, 52(3), 525-542. van Stekelenburg, J., & Klandermans, B. (2013). The social psychology of protest. Current Sociology Review, 61(5-6), 886-905. van Stekelenburg, J., Klandermans, B., & van Dijk, W. W. (2009). Context matters: Explaining how and why mobilizing context influences motivational dynamics. Journal of Social Issues, 65(4), 815-838. van Zomeren, M., Leach, C. W., & Spears, R. (2012). Protesters as “passionate economists”: A dynamic dual pathway model of approach coping with collective disadvantage. Personality and Social Psychology Review, 16(2), 180-199. van Zomeren, M., Postmes, T., & Spears, R. (2008). Toward an integrative social identity model of collective action: A quantitative research synthesis of three socio-psychological perspectives. Psychological Bulletin, 134(4), 504–535. Velasquez, A., & LaRose, R. (2015). Youth collective activism through social media: The role of collective efficacy. New Media & Society, 17(6), 899-918. Vicious Lawless Association Disestablishment Act. (2013). Retrieved from http://www5.austlii.edu.au/au/legis/qld/consol_act/vlada2013473/ Vromen, A., & Coleman, W. (2011). Online movement mobilisation and electoral politics. Communication, Politics & Culture, 44(2), 76-94. Vromen, A., & Collin, P. (2010). Everyday youth participation? Contrasting views from Australian policymakers and young people. Young, 18(1), 97-112. Wollman, N., & Stouder, R. (1991). Believed efficacy and political activity: A test of the specificity hypothesis. The Journal of Social Psychology, 131(4), 557-566.
Stürmer, S., Simon, B., Loewy, M., & Jörger, H. (2003). The dual-pathway model of social movement participation: The case of the fat acceptance movement. Social Psychology Quarterly, 66(1), 71-82.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Student activism: An exploration of pre-service teacher engagement Jason van Tol
57
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
When rating systems do not rate Evaluating ERA’s performance Paul Henman University of Queensland
Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis University of Newcastle
In 2015, the Australian Government’s Excellence in Research for Australia (ERA) assessment of research quality declined to rate 1.5 per cent of submissions from universities. The public debate focused on practices of gaming or ‘coding errors’ within university submissions as the reason for this outcome. The issue was about the in/appropriate allocation of research activities to Fields of Research. This paper argues that such practices are only part of the explanation. With the support of statistical modelling, unrated outcomes are shown to have also arisen from particular evaluation practices within the discipline of Psychology and the associated Medical and Health Sciences Research Evaluation Committee. Given the high stakes nature of unrated outcomes and that the evaluation process breaches public administration principles by being not appealable nor appropriately transparent, the paper concludes with recommendations for the strengthening ERA policy and procedures to enhance trust in future ERA processes. Keywords: higher education policy, universities, research performance, performance assessment, performance measurement, Excellence in Research for Australia, ERA, Australian Research Council, ARC, public administration
Introduction
for a particular discipline, a category of ‘not assessed’ (n/a) was given.
On 4 December 2015, the Australian Research Council
The ERA process has been subjected to academic
(ARC) released the results of its third Excellence in
analysis and commentary (Gable, 2013), as has the wider
Research for Australia (ERA) assessment process. The
and growing practice of national research assessment
process assessed disciplines, or Fields of Research (FoR),
exercises, such as the UK’s Research Excellence
in each of 41 Australian universities, based on their own
Framework (REF) and its predecessor, the Research
submissions. Each submission, or Unit of Evaluation
Assessment Exercise (RAE) (Elton, 2000; Geuna & Martin,
(UoE), consisted of research indicators including research
2003). Many of these articles are highly critical of these
funding, research publications, applied indicators, and
forms of evaluation and their authors have argued that
esteem measures. Each discipline at each university
they do not achieve their stated goals, and also lead to
that made a submission was rated from 1 to 5, being
dysfunctional managerial control over traditional academic
‘well below world standard’ to being ‘well above world
practices (Bonnell, 2016; Kwok, 2013; Martin, 2011).While
standard’. Where institutions did not make a submission
many of these articles challenge the performance metric
58
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
approach, many more engage with the contours and
In an effort to better understand the administrative
specifics of performance evaluation design. For example,
black box, we examined the ERA production of n/r
the ERA 2010 allocation of a four-scale ranking to journals
UoE using both textual analysis of public reporting and
was subjected to such widespread challenge due to its
statistical examination of the outcomes. One of our goals
subjective and political construction (Haslam & Koval,
was to further investigate and understand the locus of
2010; Vanclay, 2011) that it was finally dropped.
the problems associated with n/r outcomes. Furthermore,
In ERA 2015 a new twist to the evaluation process
our analyses provide a basis for suggestions for enhancing
occurred. In addition to the five-scale rating, a new
the public governance of ERA processes to ensure they
category was created, ‘not rated’ (n/r). This new outcome
maintain confidence and credibility for future ERA rounds,
was given for disciplinary areas within an institution
including its expansion in 2018 to cover research impact.
that made a submission, but ‘due to coding errors’ ERA
The next section presents an overview of the n/r
committees were unable or unwilling to allocate it a
outcomes with respect to institutions, FoR and ERA RECs.
numerical rating from one to five (ERA, 2015, p. 364).
These data and their patterns are then considered in the
The failure of the rating system to rate some submissions
light of public statements about the n/r UoE, and statistical
has generated considerable public and private debate,
analysis using Bayesian statistical modelling to assess the
including media coverage.
probabilities of the n/r outcomes. These observations are
Unfortunately, the debate so far has shed little light on how submissions came to be categorised as n/r, and speaks to a wider discomfort in the university sector about the black-box, opaque nature of
interpreted to identify the
... university reputations are enhanced or degraded based on ratings, and the not rated outcomes have cast significant doubt about the propriety of those seven institutions who received them.
ERA rating exercises. Indeed,
best explanation for the n/r outcomes. The concluding section
considers
what
these findings suggest for the possible changes to ERA rules
and
administrative
processes.
there is considerable secrecy in the process. University submissions are confidential,
ERA 2015’s not rated submissions
and members of the Research Evaluation Committees (RECs) sign strict confidentiality agreements to ensure
For ERA 2015, each of 41 universities was invited to make
the confidentiality of submissions to the rating process
submissions for rating in any of 179 FoR. These fields
and of the process itself. While the members of the RECs
are defined by the FoR codes in the Australian and New
are
(http://www.arc.gov.au/era-2015-research-
Zealand Standard Research Classification (ABS, 2008).
evaluation-committee-rec-members) the reviewers who
Here, and throughout, we exclude from analysis the
provide input into peer-reviewed disciplines are not,
two-digit FoR codes, and focus on the more fine-grained
and there is no process for appealing the rating results.
divisions of the four-digit codes, of which there are 157.
Institutions can, however, appeal the process by which
Together, the 41 universities made 1,802 submissions. Of
ratings were made if they are viewed as infringing the
these, only 27, or 1.5 per cent, were categorised as n/r.
stated process, but as the process is largely hidden it
These 27 n/r UoE were distributed across seven of the
would be hard to make a case on those grounds.
41 (17 per cent) participating universities (see Table 1).
known
There are significant public interest grounds for
University of Wollongong had the most, with 13 out of
analysing this situation. Firstly, there are important public
their 54 (24 per cent) submissions n/r, Victoria University
administration principles at stake, including due process,
second with 8 of 29 (28 per cent) submissions n/r, while
administrative fairness, transparent and accountable
the remaining five had only one or two n/r submissions.
public administration, and decision making being subject
Data on ERA ratings have been obtained from the ARC
to appeal (Bovens et al., 2014; Weber, 2009, pp. 196-244).
website (www.arc.gov.au/era-outcomes) and reports
Secondly, university reputations are enhanced or degraded
(ARC 2015).
based on ratings, and the not rated outcomes have cast
Another way to view the n/r units is by discipline (or
significant doubt about the propriety of those seven
Field of Research – FoR), instead of institution. Of the
institutions who received them. Thirdly, such universities
157 different disciplines defined by the FoR codes, 20
also need clear feedback to identify perceived problems in
disciplines generated at least one n/r unit of evaluation
their submissions in order to avoid future n/r outcomes.
(see Table 2). Only two of the FoR codes yielded a n/r
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
59
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Table 1: Unrated (n/r) submissions by institution Institution
Number of n/r from total of institution’s UoE
University of Wollongong
Percentage n/r of institution’s UoE
13 of 54
24%
Victoria University
8 of 29
28%
University of Tasmania
2 of 53
3.8%
Central Queensland University
1 of 14
Edith Cowan University
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 3: Unrated (n/r) submissions by Research Evaluation Committee (REC) Research Evaluation Committee
Number of unrated (n/r) from total evaluated
Percentage unrated of submissions considered
Biological and Biotechnological Sciences (BB)
3 of 199
1.5%
7.1%
Economics and Commerce (EC)
5 of 171
2.9%
1 of 27
3.7%
0%.
1 of 39
2.6%
Education and Human Society (EHS)
0 of 214
RMIT University University of Newcastle
1 of 57
1.7%
Engineering and Environmental Sciences (EE)
5 of 214
2.3%
Humanities and Creative Arts (HCA)
0 of 308
0%
Mathematical, Information and Computing Sciences (MIC)
1 of 153
0.7%
12 of 321
3.7%
1 of 222
0.5%
Source: www.arc.gov.au/era-outcomes
Table 2: Unrated (n/r) submissions by Field of Research Field of Research
Number of unrated (n/r) submissions
0103
Numerical and Computational Mathematics
1
Medical and Health Sciences (MHS)
0204
Condensed Matter Physics
1
0601
Biochemistry and Cell Biology
1
Physical, Chemical and Earth Sciences (PCE)
0904
Chemical Engineering
1
0905
Civil Engineering
1
category for more than one university: Public Health and
0908
Food Sciences
1
Health Services (FoR code 1117) and Psychology (FoR
0915
Interdisciplinary Engineering
1
code 1701), which yielded two and five n/r outcomes,
0999
Other Engineering
1
1103
Clinical Sciences
1
1111
Nutrition and Dietetics
1
1115
Pharmacology and Pharmaceutical Sciences
1
1116
Medical Physiology
1
Table 3. Just one REC, the Medical panel, was responsible
1117
Public Health and Health Services
2
for almost half of all n/r outcomes from ERA 2015 (12
1402
Applied Economics
1
outcomes, or 3.7 per cent).
1501
Accounting, Auditing and Accountability
1
1503
Business and Management
1
Analysing the reasons for not rated outcomes
1505
Marketing
1
One obvious interpretation of the pattern of these
1599
Other Commerce, Management, Tourism and Services
1
outcomes is that the problems of n/r submissions lie
1701
Psychology
5
Indeed, in the context of high-stakes performance
1799
Other Psychology and Cognitive Sciences
1
measurement, gaming is to be expected (Bevan & Hood,
Source: www.arc.gov.au/era-outcomes
Source: www.arc.gov.au/era-outcomes
respectively. A third way to view these results is by the committees that allocated ratings. The ERA ratings were determined by the eight RECs, each of which was responsible for rating submissions in a different subset of FoR codes. The distribution of n/r outcomes across RECs is shown in
within universities, and in particular, what they submitted.
2006; Hood, 2006; Jacob, 2005), and rules are likely to be bent as far as possible to enhance institutional performance, as indicated by the ratings.This perspective
60
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
is certainly what has been implied and is a widespread
To be sure, the ERA rules state ‘FoRs should be assigned
perception within the sector, as evidenced in the mass
to an output if they are relevant to that output’(ARC,2014,p.
media articles cited below.
32). Indeed, for each journal and conference proceedings,
Analysing not rated using public statements
the ARC assigns up to three FoR codes, and institutions must submit journal or conference publications to these
Prior to the release of the ERA 2015 results, a story in
FoR codes. The exception is the ‘reassignment rule’
the Fairfax media reported that ‘Several universities
which states that another FoR code can be used when
are being threatened with tough penalties for allegedly
‘publications which have significant content (66 per cent
providing data that would artificially boost their
or more) that could best be described by [that] four-digit
performance on [ERA]’ (Knott, 2015, 18 November), and
FoR code’ (ARC, 2014, p. 33).The allocation of books, book
referred specifically to University of Tasmania and Central
chapters and research funding does not have this detail,
Queensland University. The ARC’s CEO Professor Aidan
but remains subject to the overarching rule stated at the
Byrne responded that, ‘…it is not correct that either of
start of this paragraph.
the universities named “coded” journal articles “multiple
Notably, under the rules, the FoR codes assigned to
times” to “inflate a university’s results”’. He proceeded to
researchers have no relationship to the FoR code assigned
say that REC panels had raised queries about data and that
to their publications. Rather, the ERA rules state ‘FoR
such queries ‘account for well under 2 per cent of the UoEs
assignment should describe the focus of the activities of
submitted for assessment’, and that such assessment will
the researcher’ (ARC, 2014, p. 29).This results in situations
be ‘based on clear and robust processes with the rules of
such as an engineer publishing in an international
submission clearly stated when released in July 2014’.The
development journal about engineering projects in
media’s presentation clearly constructs some universities
developing countries, where the FoR codes assigned to
as gaming the system with alleged ‘data manipulation’
the researcher may relate entirely to engineering (FoR
that will be countered by clear, fair and robust review
two digit code 09), and yet the journal could be assigned
processes. More directly, this coverage suggests that some
by the ARC or the institution to FoR codes in Economics
institutions may have breached the ERA rules.
(FoR two digit code 14) or Studies in Human Society (FoR
Following the release of the ERA results, The Australian
two digit code 16).
summarised the ERA n/r outcomes by institution
Returning to the case of Victoria University, the
(Loussikian, 2015, 9 December). The newspaper article
reporting of Professor Lawson’s review can be interpreted
referred to ‘[A] significant number of coding errors in
as implying that Victoria University’s submission did not
submissions’ as the cause of the n/r outcomes, and the ARC
pass the overarching ERA research output rule, and instead
is reported to have referred to ‘coding issue[s]’ (see also
used ‘complex computer models’ without overarching
ARC, 2015, p. 364), statements that reinforce the view that
‘academic judgement’ to allocate FoR codes to outputs on
the ERA rules were breached. However, the University of
a numerical basis, thereby separating publication content
Wollongong – the institution with the most n/r outcomes –
from its most relevant FoR code.
was reported to state that ‘UoW’s ERA 2015 submission was
Important questions remain. Are ‘problems’ or gaming
prepared in accordance with the…submission guidelines
within institutions the sole explanation for the n/r ERA
and followed the same process as previous submissions’
outcomes? Is failure of universities to provide appropriate
(ARC, 2015, p. 364, emphasis added), thereby countering
submissions that accord with the ‘clear and robust’ ERA
the view that ERA rules were breached.
processes with ‘independent’ committees with ‘integrity’
Subsequently, Victoria University contracted Emeritus
the only interpretation or full explanation of a failure of
Professor Alan Lawson from the University of Queensland
rating system to rate? Is it just the fault of institutions
to undertake a review of their ERA submission process
who have not played by the rules? Alternatively, are
in the light of their high proportion of n/r submissions.
there public administration insights about the ERA rules
According to a report in The Australian (Loussikian, 2016,
and processes that also need to be considered? Indeed,
16 March), Professor Lawson found that the university
the ARC reported that the reason for n/r UoEs is ‘not
allocated some research performance indicators (e.g.
the same reason for each unit of [evaluation] that has
publications) to FoRs not related to that indicator,
received this rating’ (Loussikian, 2015, 9 December).
apparently in breach of the ERA rules that outputs can
Accordingly, it is important to identify whether the
only be assigned to a specific field of research if ‘they are
patterns of n/r UoEs reflect problems within the ERA
relevant to that output’.
system beyond the university level. To provide further
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
61
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
insight into these questions, we undertook statistical
to compare which of these two models – the null model
modelling to consider these questions.
or the outlier model – provided the best description of the full data set. In all cases, we used the same prior
Analysing not rated patterns statistically
distribution for the probability of yielding a n/r outcome.
The distribution of n/r outcomes is uneven across
This prior distribution was Beta(11,1), which can be
institutions (seeTable 1),which reinforces the interpretation
interpreted as a prior expectation consistent with
that erroneous institutional submissions explain the n/r
previously observing ten ERA outcomes, none of which
submissions. However, the distribution of n/r outcomes
were n/r. We tested many other prior distributions, from
also appears uneven across FoR codes (Table 2), and across
uniform, Beta(1,1), up to Beta(41,1), and the results were
RECs (Table 3). This variability raises questions about
qualitatively unchanged.
whether the greater number of n/r outcomes in certain
The null model against which all others were compared
categories is more likely to be caused by differences
showed that the data favoured an overall probability of
between institutions, differences between the RECs,
n/r outcomes around 1.5 per cent (this was the median
differences in the ways that FoR codes were evaluated, or
of the posterior distribution), with a 95 per cent highest
a combination of each. Put another way, while the Victoria
posterior density (HPD) interval from 1.03 per cent to
University case demonstrates that there can be systemic
2.16 per cent. Note that 1.5 per cent was chosen as this is
practices with ERA submission processes within a specific
the percentage of UoEs that were n/r.
institution, is it also possible that there may be practices
Institutions as outliers: We compared the null model
within specific disciplines or specific REC processes that
against 41 models, each one of which treated one
can explain the patterns of n/r submissions?
particular institution as having a different rate of n/r
There are standard and well-accepted statistical
outcomes from all the others. Figure 1 summarises
approaches for addressing these questions. Similar
results from these models. The 41 institutions are arrayed
questions arise in educational and psychological testing
along the x-axis, and above each one the black error bar
settings, for example when many students take an exam
shows the 95 per cent HPD interval for probability of
consisting of many questions, and the examiners wish to
a n/r outcome from that institution (the black circle is
know whether any students performed particularly well
the posterior median). The shaded rectangle covers the
or poorly, and also whether questions were particularly
95% HPD for the probability of a n/r outcome from the
difficult or easy.
other 40 institutions combined. In most cases, the black
We used a Bayesian approach based on nested model
error bars overlap the grey rectangles which means that
tests (Congdon, 2006) to identify whether the proportion
there is no evidence that the singled-out institution has
of n/r outcomes was unusual for any particular institution,
a different rate of n/r outcomes from the others. For just
FoR code, or REC. In other words, the tests can identify
two institutions (University of Wollongong, and Victoria
whether
different
University) there was evidence in favour of a different rate
institutions, different FoR codes or different RECs in the
of n/r outcomes than the others.To quantify these results,
presence of n/r outcomes that are not random statistical
we calculated Bayes factors to quantify the evidence in
variations. The analysis approach for institutions, FoR
favour of each outlier model over the null model. These
codes and RECs was identical in each case, which
are printed at the top of Figure 1. In almost all cases,
we outline here for the institution-focussed analysis.
the Bayes factors are less than 1, indicating evidence in
We first fitted a null model to the data, which treats all
favour of the null model, namely that allocation of n/r
institutions identically, and estimated a single parameter,
is the same in this institution as the others. Only for the
representing the probability of a n/r outcome. All UoEs,
two institutions mentioned above do the Bayes factors
from all institutions and all FoR codes, were assumed to
indicate strong evidence in favour of a different rate of
have this same probability of (independently) yielding
n/r outcome. Put differently, these findings suggest that
a n/r outcome, which leads to a binomial distribution
there is something different about these two institutions’
for the number of n/r outcomes. Next, we examined an
ERA outcomes (and thus their submissions) compared
‘outlier’ model, which tested whether one particular
with other institutions, and that there is no discernible
institution was different from the others. For this model,
difference between the other institutions’ ERA outcomes
we chose one institution and estimated one probability
(and thus their submissions).
there
are
differences
between
for that institution, and a different probability for all
FoR Codes as Outliers: Our second analysis investigated
other combined institutions. We then used Bayes factors
the evidence for each FoR code yielding a different rate
62
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Figure 1: Bayes factors in favour of an outlier institution of n/r outcomes than the others. To simplify, we grouped
outlier model which treated FoR=17 as different from the
all the four-digit FoR codes into their two-digit categories
others indicated strong evidence for this over the null
(e.g. the FoR=18 analysis grouped together FoRs 1801,
model: 3,909-to-1. Putting these findings another way, they
1802, and 1899). Figure 2 summarises this analysis, using
suggest that there is something different about the ERA
the same format as Figure 1. Once again, most FoR codes
outcomes for Psychology FoR code as against other FoR
showed evidence in favour of having the same rate
codes, and that there is no discernible difference between
of n/r outcomes as the others. Only one FoR code was
the other FoR codes’ ERA outcomes.
different – FoR=17, Psychology. This code had a posterior
RECs as Outliers: The final analysis investigated
median probability of yielding a n/r result nearly an
evidence for each of the eight RECs being different
order of magnitude higher than the others, at 13.3 per
from the others (see Figure 3). There was some evidence
cent (HPD: 5.8%-24.3%). The Bayes factor in favour of the
that the Humanities REC statistically provided fewer
Figure 2: Bayes factors in favour of an outlier FoR Code vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
63
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
n/r outcomes than other panels, but the evidence was not strong (6.6-to-1). There was stronger statistical evidence that the Medical REC gave more n/r outcomes than other panels (34-to-1). Putting these findings another way, they suggest that there is something different about the ERA outcomes allocated by the Humanities and Medical RECs than other RECs, and that there is no discernible difference between the other RECs’ ERA ratings. Importantly, the Humanities REC is found to be statistically less likely to give n/r outcomes (indeed, they provided none), while the Medical REC is found to be statistically more likely to give n/r.
Figure 3: Bayes factors in favour of an outlier REC
In other words, these modelling results suggest that there is something about the processes within
models used to describe simple decisions, to the group
the Humanities REC that means it is less likely to allocate
processes that underpin conflict in Northern Ireland,
n/r to UoEs than other RECs, and that the Medical REC
to the effectiveness of programs to encourage smoking
processes make it more likely to allocate n/r to UoEs.This
cessation, to the impact of mindfulness on mental health.
raises questions about what it is about the composition
Identifying the boundaries of the discipline could be
of and/or processes within these RECs (or the FoRs that
argued to be more difficult than for other disciplines.
they assess) that explains their lesser/greater propensity to generate n/r outcomes.
Analysing ERA processes
There are two aspects of this consideration. The first aspect relates to the types of research in which psychologists are involved. It is very broad. It could be counter-argued that there are similarly other
The above findings are notable, as they challenge the
disciplines that contribute to a broad range of research
suggestion that institutions’ submissions were the sole
areas – such as statistics (FoR 1604) as a method for
cause of not rated outcomes. Clearly, the ratings produced
countless areas, or engineering (two-unit FoR 09) as
by the ERA process are based on the submissions from
a process of building and design in fields diverse as
institutions. The fact that there is a statistically unusual
telecommunications, mining, cityscapes, architecture
allocation of n/r outcomes in Psychology (FoR 17) and
and even social planning, and policy and administration
in the Medical REC suggests, however, that there is
(FoR 1605) relating to all aspects of the natural, social
something about the nature of the psychology discipline
and economic world that governments and societies
and/or Medical REC that is different to other disciplines,
collectively seek to shape and direct – yet these FoRs
and RECs that is independent of institutions’ submissions.
did not generate n/r outcomes.
Due to the black box nature of the ERA process, including
The second aspect relates to the types of research
institutions’ submissions to the ERA and the deliberations
that are regarded as legitimately ‘psychological’ research
of the RECs, it is not possible to directly identify what
concerns,as opposed to have the expertise of psychologists
these are. In the absence of such information, we offer
contribute to a research domain.To illustrate more starkly,
some possibilities in the following.
as statistics is a research method that can be applied almost
Consider first some possible explanations for why
universally to topics of research, statisticians contribute to
Psychology (FoR 17) outcomes are unlike those for other
research in countless FoRs. However, their contribution
disciplinary codes. One explanation is that psychology
to a research domain does not typically contribute to the
is a broad church. People who identify as psychologists
research field of statistics; it does not develop statistics
can study anything from the molecular processes that are
as a body of knowledge or endeavour further. Statistics
affected in the progeny of rats that have been stressed,
acts as a tool to research. It might be argued that what
to the neural correlates of predictive process in early
legitimately counts as psychological research (as opposed
audition, to the mathematical properties of diffusion
to the use of psychological expertise in research) is much
64
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
wider than what counts as statistical research (as opposed to the use of statistics expertise in research).
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
The principle of ‘administrative fairness’,‘administrative justice’ or ‘due process’, which is a hallmark of modern
These observations in themselves do not directly
democratic public administrations is multi-faceted (Adler,
explain the high likelihood of submissions in psychology
2003; Mashaw, 1985). It requires that administrative rules
recording a n/r outcome than any other field of research.
are clear and transparent, that rules are applied equitably
It firstly suggests, however, that the great diversity in what
and fairly, that decision making processes are open and
counts as psychological research creates confusion and
transparent including explanations for decisions when
debate about where the boundary lies between what is
sought, and that administrative decisions can be appealed
and what is not psychology research. Secondly, it might
(du Gay, 2000; Hunter, 1993; Weber, 2009, pp. 196-244).
mean that obtaining the corresponding psychological
All these dimensions ensure that public administrators
expertise on the REC to cover the breadth could have
remain accountable and that unfair treatment, bias and
posed a difficulty for the ARC, resulting in the FoR
corruption do not occur. These classic administrative
panel, or REC, not feeling competent to award a rating
principles were well understood by Weber over a century
to some submissions. Put another way, the results suggest
ago, and continue today invested in different parlance
that there was a mismatch between the scope that the
including ‘open government’ and ‘open data’ (Lathrop
panel was prepared to admit for the 1701 code and the
& Ruma, 2010). In the light of the above findings, it is
assumptions that multiple universities employed when
important to evaluate how well the ERA 2015 processes
compiling their lists of inputs under this code. Recall that
that led to the overrepresentation n/r outcomes in the
there is nothing to suggest here that submissions were in
Psychology FoR and Medical REC accords with these
obvious breach of ‘the [ERA] rules of submission clearly
fundamental public administrative principles. By doing
stated when released in July 2014’, but rather that there
so, possible amendments to the ERA process can be
are differences in opinion relating to the application of the
identified.
more discretionary elements, notably the ‘reassignment
In relation to the need for clear and transparent
rule’, whereby journal publications can to be assigned to
administrative rules, the ARC has a comprehensive,
other FoRs than those allocated by the ARC’s ERA 2015
published set of rules (ARC, 2014) which also set out
Submission Journal List in certain circumstances.
the processes of evaluation. The rules provide clear
The above analyses are best guesses that try to interpret
requirements and directions, but also provide a level of
the data and processes. Unfortunately, it is not possible
flexibility especially as they relate to the allocation of
to assess the veracity of our analyses given the systemic
FoR codes to evidence submitted by Universities, such as
secrecy of the rating process. The feedback from the
publications and research funding.This is necessary as the
ARC to institutions with n/r UoEs could provide further
boundaries between disciplines (or FoR) are not clear or
evidence to test our interpretation of the process leading
rigid.With much contemporary research being conducted
to some n/r outcomes. Indeed, ARC CEO Professor
by teams of researchers from a variety of disciplines, the
Aidan Bryne explained: ‘Where our Research Evaluation
discipline/s in which a research project or publication is
Committees
located can be difficult to specify unambiguously.
(RECs), our
independent
committees
made up of discipline experts nominated by Australian
It is arguably within this space of discretion that the
universities, have queried data the ARC has communicated
second principle of applying rules equitably and fairly
with that university’ (ARC, 2015). Such communication is
becomes problematic. It is problematic for institutions in
not available to us.
abiding by the rules in applying FoR codes to evaluation evidence, and problematic for ERA evaluators in ensuring
Assessing the quality of ERA assessment processes
they are applied appropriately. To illustrate, consider the ‘reassignment rule’, which states that another FoR code can be used to those specified in the ERA 2015
We can only speculate as to the basis for n/r outcomes,
Submission Journal List when ‘publications which have
but it is clear that systematic problems occurred within
significant content (66 per cent or more) that could best
two universities, and that there are also systemic problems
be described by [that] four-digit FoR code’ (ARC, 2014, p.
within the rating processes in the Psychology FoR. The
33).When, for example, might that be, and how might that
existence of rating system shortcomings whose origins
be determined? By the discipline identity of the authors?
lie in the rating processes rather than the universities has
By the authors’ own sense of the discipline in which the
significant public administration implications.
study is located? By the authors’ institution’s sense of the
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
65
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
discipline in which the study is located? By the journals
situation that relates to the fourth public administration
where the paper is cited? Another potential challenge
principle which is that administrative decisions be
arises when a publication’s authorship is across different
appealable.
institutions. Should a publication’s FoR assignment be
The ERA process largely fails the administrative
consistent across institutions, or is it based solely on
principle that administrative decisions can be appealed.
the perspective of each institution and authors in each
The scarcity of feedback described above effectively
institution?
prevents appeals. While the ERA submission guidelines
No doubt, the public reporting of Victoria University’s
(ARC 2015) makes no mention of appeal rights regarding
submission suggests that Victoria University breached
ERA outcomes, it is understood that institutions have
these assignment rules. However, University of Wollongong
been advised that ERA outcomes are not appealable, only
publicly contends their submission was ‘in accordance
the ERA processes are appealable when those processes
with the…submission guidelines’, and our modelling of
do not accord with ERA rules, a situation that institutions
n/r outcomes suggests that this would also be the case
are unlikely to know because they are confidential.
for all other institutions allocated a n/r outcome. At the same time, it could be surmised from the n/r modelling that reviewers of the Psychology FoR submissions and
Conclusion and consideration of ERA reforms
the Health REC took a different view on compliance with the rules. This is not to suggest that the REC failed
This paper has analysed,using Bayesian statistical modelling,
to apply rules fairly or equitably, but rather that the rules
the loci of n/r outcomes in the ERA 2015 processes.While
are not sufficiently robust to achieve agreement between
public statements of such outcomes strongly suggest that
all parties on the relationship between FoR codes and
n/r outcomes arise from institutional problems, arguably
research evidence submitted.
from gaming behaviours, our analyses suggest that this
The third administrative principle that decision making
is only part of the explanation. The likelihood of Victoria
processes are open and transparent including explanations
University and University of Wollongong’s n/r outcomes
for decisions when sought, is clearly not evident in
being random is virtually zero. However, there also appears
ERA rating exercises. ERA rating processes are largely
to be systemic differences between the rating processes
secret through systematic nondisclosure. REC members
of the Psychology FoR (1701) and the Medical REC and
and external reviewers (the latter are not publicly
those of other FoRs and RECs that are not attributable to
named) must sign strict confidentiality agreements and
institutional factors. Specifically, the statistical likelihood
institutions’ submissions are not made public despite the
of the n/r outcomes in these areas being random is
bulk of the data – specifically, publications and research
respectively 3900-to-1 and 34-to-1. In relation to this
funding – being already public at researcher level and
finding, we have proposed that psychology’s very diverse
aggregate institutional level. Nor are the bases for rating
research foci combined with the wide discretion given
(or not rating) decisions made public. In relation to n/r
to institutions in attributing research evidence to FoR
outcomes, the ARC has publicly stated that relevant
codes, has led to disagreements between submitting
institutions have had feedback, however anecdotally it
institutions and ERA assessing personnel, resulting in n/r
is understood that the feedback to institutions has been
outcomes. This suggests that some changes in ERA policy,
minimal. It is also stated in the ERA Submission Guidelines
procedures and guidelines are necessary to avoid such
that if the ARC regards part of a UoE as ‘incomplete or
outcomes in future. By reference to recognised principles
inaccurate, or contains false or misleading information’ it
of public administration, we further argued that ERA 2015
may not submit such information to ERA processes and
processes fell short of good public administration.
that the ARC ‘will advise the institution of [such] action
The essential problem of the ERA process is how to
and provide a statement of reasons’ (ARC, 2014: p. 72).
assign research inputs and outputs to FoR codes and to
These are important matters of procedural justice. For if
do so in a way that facilitates agreement between the
an institution does not understand the grounds on which
institutions doing the assigning and the REC evaluators.
they received a n/r outcome, then they are unable to
The ARC’s approach to assigning FoRs to each journal
change their organisational processes and submissions for
is necessarily vexed as it is a proxy for the FoR of each
the following ERA. A further implication of not knowing
article published in that journal. The ARC discovered that
the basis for or process leading to a n/r outcome means
assessing journal article quality (or impact) by a proxy of
that institutions are unable to appeal the decision, a
journal quality (or impact factor) was highly problematic
66
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
and dropped it. The challenge in this case is more
on awarded ARC and NHMRC projects.This appears to be
problematic as there needs to be agreement between
a significant anomaly.
assigners of FoR to publications and the FoR evaluators of
A
Machine
Learning
approach.
Allowing
those publications. With this understanding, a number of
assignment of publications to FoR codes on the basis
amendments to the ERA process could be implemented
of either the journals in which they appear or the FoR
in order to strengthen the ERA process and ensure that
assignments of researchers who wrote them would be
institutions can reduce or eliminate the chances of n/r
transparent, but not always entirely adequate. For instance,
outcomes in future:
interdisciplinary journals such as Science or Nature could
Provide Feedback. One straightforward action that
potentially be assigned to many FoR codes, but one might
could be taken is to provide feedback to each institution
not want to allow a publication that appears in these
about a decision to allocate an n/r outcome. If there are
journals to be allocated to just any of the available FoR
particular publications or research funding that have been
codes. An alternative approach would be to develop a
deemed inappropriate for a given FoR code, then these
machine classifier capable of taking the journal, title and
should be highlighted to clarify the interpreted scope of
abstract and assigning FoR codes (Witten & Frate, 2005).
the code.This would enable institutions to modify the way
The classifier could be made publically available allowing
in which they allocate publications in future rounds. If
institutions to test their allocations prior to submission.
there was some other basis for allocating the n/r outcome
The existing database of previous submissions would
then that should be articulated. Some action of this kind
provide a substantial training set on which the classifier
would seem to be a minimal yet effective response.
could be tuned and tested. The performance of the
Institute an appeals process. Mistakes are
classifier could be quantified and, should institutions
sometimes made. Given the high stakes nature of the ERA
find egregious errors the classifier, could be adjusted in a
process, an appeals mechanism would be appropriate
process of continual improvement. Such a classifier would
to ensure no error has occurred and that RECs are
effectively encode a public standard of what should
accountable for their decisions.
appear in a given FoR code and eliminate the personal
Remove the ‘reassignment rule’. Much of the uncertainty that currently pertains and much of the scope
variability and bias that is an inherent aspect of employing human panels to make these determinations.
for “gaming” the system occurs as a consequence of the
It is essential that the ERA processes be strengthened.
reassignment rule. One option then, would be to remove
A lot is at stake for institutions’ reputations when n/r
this provision. Institutions would then be restricted to
outcomes occur, and this is especially unfair if the
allocating publications to FoR codes on the basis of the
outcomes appear to be beyond their control or they
journals in which they appear in the ERA Submission
are unable to rectify in subsequent processes. It is also
Journal List. Provided they conformed to these rules their
essential in order to maintain the confidence of the sector
submissions would be deemed acceptable. Should this
that ERA processes are legitimate and functioning well.
path be adopted, it may be necessary for institutions to be
This is especially pertinent given the expanded remit
able to interact with the ARC to propose changes to the
to measure ‘research engagement and impact’, which is
current assignments, including increasing the maximum
arguably more fraught and contentious than ‘research
number of FoR codes for each publication. If this process
excellence’, in the forthcoming 2018 round.
occurred prior to the actual submission process then uncertainty would be eliminated and for the non-review
Dr Paul Henman is Associate Professor of Sociology and
based panels, there may be no requirement to meet.
Social Policy at the University of Queensland. He has recently
Tighten
the
‘reassignment
rule’.
The
led a five-year ARC Discovery project on performance
‘reassignment rule’ could to be tightened to limit the
measurement in Australia’s health, school and university
scope of reassignments. For example, the rules could
sectors.
require that in cases of publication reassignment to FoR
Contact: p.henman@uq.edu.au
X, it is necessary to have at least one author who has been assigned FoR X. Overall, there could be a higher association
Professor Scott D. Brown is an ARC Future Fellow in the
between submissions and submitted researchers. For
School of Psychology, University of Newcastle. His research
example, currently research income can be submitted
interests include cognitive science, mathematical psychology,
under FoR codes not related to a Chief Investigator’s FoR,
and neuroscience.
and indeed can be inconsistent with the FoR codes listed vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
67
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Professor Simon Dennis is Head of School of Psychology at the University of Newcastle, Australia. His areas of expertise include human memory and computational linguistics.
References Adler, M. (2003). A Socio-Legal Approach to Administrative Justice. Law & Policy, 25(4), 323-352. Australian Bureau of Statistics (ABS). (2008). Australian and New Zealand Standard Research Classification, Cat. No. 1297.0, Canberra: ABS. Australian Research Council (ARC). (2014). ERA 2015: Submission Guidelines. Canberra: ARC. Australian Research Council (ARC). (2015). CEO Statement: ERA 2015 Speculation. Retrieved from http://www.arc.gov.au/era-2015-speculation. Bevan, G. & Hood, C. (2006). What’s measured is what matters: targets and gaming in the English public health care system. Public Administration, 84(3), 517-538.
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Geuna, A., & Martin, B. R. (2003). University research evaluation and funding: An international comparison. Minerva, 41(4), 277-304. Haslam, N. & Koval, P. (2010). Possible research area bias in the Excellence in Research for Australia (ERA) draft journal rankings. Australian Journal of Psychology, 62(2), 112-114. Hood, C. (2006). Gaming in targetworld: The targets approach to managing British public services. Public Administration Review, 66(4), 515-521. Hunter, I. (1993) Bureaucrat, critic, citizen. Arena Journal, 2, 77-101. Jacob, B.A. (2005). Accountability, incentives and behavior: The impact of highstakes testing in the Chicago Public Schools. Journal of Public Economics, 89(5), 761-796. Knott, M. (2015). Warning over ‘gaming’ of research score. The Sydney Morning Herald, 18 November. Kwok, J.T. (2013). Impact of ERA research assessment on university behaviour and their staff. Melbourne: NTEU National Policy and Research Unit. Lathrop, D. & Ruma, L. (2010). Open government: Collaboration, transparency, and participation in practice. New York: O’Reilly Media, Inc.
Bonnell, A.G. (2016). Tide or tsunami? The impact of metrics on scholarly research. Australian Universities’ Review 58(1), 54-61.
Loussikian, K. (2015). Code flaws in ERA submissions. The Australian, 9 December.
Bovens, M., Goodin, R. E., & Schillemans, T. (eds.). (2014). The Oxford handbook of public accountability. Oxford: OUP.
Loussikian, K. (2016). ‘Errors’ in ERA subs behind rejections. The Australian. 16 March.
Congdon, P. (2006). Bayesian statistical modelling. 2nd ed. Chichester: John Wiley & Sons.
Martin, B.R. (2011). The Research Excellence Framework and the ‘impact agenda’: are we creating a Frankenstein monster?. Research Evaluation, 20(3), 247-254.
Du Gay, P. (2000). In praise of bureaucracy: Weber-organization-ethics. London: Sage.
Mashaw, J.L. (1985). Bureaucratic justice. Westford, MA: Yale University Press.
Elton, L. (2000). The UK research assessment exercise: unintended consequences. Higher Education Quarterly, 54(3), 274-283.
Vanclay, J.K. (2011). An evaluation of the Australian Research Council’s journal ranking. Journal of Informetrics 5(2), 265-274.
Gable, A. (2013). ERA and the performance regime in Australian Higher Education: a review of the policy context. Social Policy Unit Research Paper No. 6, Brisbane: University of Queensland.
Weber, M. (2009). From Max Weber: Essays in sociology. London: Routledge.
68
Witten, I.H. & Frate, E. (2005) Data Mining: Practical machine learning tools and techniques. 2nd ed. San Francisco, CA: Morgan Kaufmann.
When rating systems do not rate Paul Henman, Scott D Brown & Simon Dennis
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma University of Melbourne
Michael Calver’s recent exhortation ‘Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper’ (AUR, 57(1): pp. 45-49) is welcome and a timely reminder of the problems associated with seeking citations at any cost. While not disagreeing with the concerns he raises we offer another way of looking at citation-seeking; thereby outlining a reconsideration of its purpose. We suggest that citations indirectly help to shape the terrain of a discipline. By providing an analysis of citation data from two key higher education journals, we show how citations are a measure of the ‘geography’ of a discipline, i.e., the networks of influence of key thinkers and the keywords that reveal scholarly interests and practices. This, in turn, provides us with information that is revealing about the nature of disciplines themselves. This paper provides a summary of data from an ongoing research program we are conducting that analyses the citation metrics of key journals in the field. Keywords: Citation networks, Gephi™, citation analytics
Introduction
leads to back-scratching in the pursuit of citations, marginalising junior colleagues in writing papers (so
Michael Calver (AUR, 57, No. 1) has recently reminded us
they may cite them later on) and misconduct – e.g.,
of the problems associated with aiming for highly cited
manipulation of research data and violation of ethical
papers. We summarise these as follows:
standards.
1. It narrows the scope of research undertaken. Calver
3. Citations are controversial. Non-existent papers or
reminds us that some areas of worthy research (e.g.
errors in citations can result in high citation rates;
taxonomy) attract few citations. Aiming purposively
deliberately nonsensical papers can too. We are
for high citations is tantamount to choosing ‘hot
reminded of the Sokal Hoax: a paper constructed
topics’ over worthy ones.
using computer-generated semi-literate nonsense
2. It reduces intrinsic rewards and true collaboration and fosters misconduct. He reminds us that intrinsic
that was published in a refereed journal before the hoax was finally revealed.
motivation declines when rewards are offered. Put
4. Successful research careers are based less on highly
simply: researchers are more likely to pursue ‘normal
cited papers and more on persistence and influence.
science’ than ‘revolutionary science’ simply because
While highly cited papers can be influential, it does
the rewards for the former are greater, in the form of
not follow that low-cited papers are not influential.
high citations, and where there is little evident benefit
Indeed, as Calver points out,‘significant influence on
of the latter. Moreover, the ‘contrived congeniality’
a discipline is more likely to follow from consistent
resulting from reduction in intrinsic rewards
performance’ (p. 47). He uses the example of more
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
69
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
influential novelists (Hemingway, Faulkner) who sold
and this has a number of benefits. We provide examples
fewer copies than their less influential peers.
of this from two key higher education journals: Studies
5. Citation counting impedes innovation. Obsession
in Higher Education (based in the UK) and Higher
with citations leads to obsession about one’s output
Education (a European journal based in the Netherlands).
and narcissism both about oneself and one’s career.
We suggest that these data are revealing about the nature
This mitigates against good research as it focuses on
of scholarly practices. We use the discipline of higher
quantity rather than quality, and loses sight of the
education in what follows but the same analysis can be
immeasurable benefits of working on important topics,
applied to any discipline, from Astrophysics to Zoology.
irrespective of their output in terms of citations.
Surprisingly, this has not been attempted before to
Calver’s conclusion from all this is the exhortation:
our knowledge – at least, not for the discipline of higher
‘please don’t aim for a highly cited paper’. His argument is:
education. The only exceptions to this have been studies
High citations lead to problems so don’t aim for a highly
that are fragmentary.These studies are noted below.
cited paper.
• Westbury analysed the citation data over a ten-year
We agree with all of the above as far as it goes.
period for the Journal of Curriculum Studies using
However, we’d like to offer a corrective to the argument
only six years of available data (1972-78) (Westbury,
while not implying that we disagree with Calver’s
1980). He found, amongst other things, that the journal
concerns. Aiming for high citations ne plus ultra is not
did not show expected widespread evidence of
an end in itself. However, it does not follow that data on
influence across national boundaries.
excessive citation rates are useless. Indeed, we think that
• Budd (1990) investigated the published material
citation data can help reveal the nature of the scholarly
commonly cited in the higher education literature and
enterprise. Let us explain.
the most frequently cited. Basing his analysis exclusively on US journals, he determined that US-based academics
‘Geographies of Influence’
Astin, Pascarella, Feldman, Centra and Cameron were the most commonly cited authors in the discipline of
For decades now, the aim of collecting citation data has
higher education.
been mainly for administrative purposes, and a way of ‘bean
• Budd and Magnuson (2010) followed-up this study two
counting’ the output of staff. It has been used secondarily
decades later and found some expected variation in the
for hiring and firing decisions. This is widespread, and
most cited authors, but still US-based academics (Astin,
academic staff are required to obtain points for their
Pascarella,Tinto, Kuh, Cabrara).
publications in an effort to meet requirements for
• Kandlbinder (2012) assessed the citations from 15
decisions about tenure and promotion. Citation metrics
consecutive issues over a five-year period of the
have also been used to provide ‘league tables’ of scholarly
Australian
journals in an attempt to steer research output into areas
and Development (1982-1986). He compared this
journal
of specialisation. The now abandoned ERA ranking tables
to 16 issues published in a second tranche (2008-
was an example of this (Moosa, 2011).
2010). Comparing three prominent journals (Higher
Higher
Education
Research
However, recently there has been a move in some
Education (HE), Studies in Higher Education (SHE),
disciplines to use citation data to tell us something
and Teaching in Higher Education) with the data from
about the character and history of scholarly disciplines
HERD, he found that one author (Biggs) appeared in
themselves (in much the same way, perhaps, as animal
all four journals. He also noted that Marton, Entwistle
droppings tell us something about the diet and social life
and Ramsden appeared in three of the journals. Other
of animals). This work broadly falls under the emerging
highly-cited authors – namely, Clark, Becher, Barnett,
field of citation network analysis, itself a sub-field of
Boud, Slaughter, and Rowland – featured in one or
research analytics.
other journal, but not all four. Unlike Budd’s studies,
We submit that networks of citation data, if analysed
Kandlbinder’s data suggested no nationality bias.
through the entire life cycle of a journal’s history, can tell
• Tight (2008) attempted a synoptic, longitudinal
us a great deal about the ‘geography’ of a discipline. This
study over one year of publication looking at several
gives another reason for seeking high citations for papers
higher education journals. Investigating 17 English
besides personal aggrandisement. High citations, and
language higher education journals published outside
citation networks are more than a (flawed) measure of
North America in the year 2000, he found that Clarke,
influence; they also tell us about the terrain of a discipline,
Ramsden, Becher, Biggs and Boud occupied the top-five
70
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Figure 1: Clusters of relationships among selected authors (Tight, 2008) positions of ‘most cited’ authors. A disproportionately
discipline (Fig. 2). Drawn from experience, rather than
large Australian-based contingent of scholars featured in
hard data, he notes a division in ‘policy’ research and
the top 20 ‘most cited’ (Ramsden, Biggs, Boud, Prosser,
‘teaching and learning’ research – each forming ‘islands’
Trigwell). Tight proposed that scholarly influence can
of scholarship that have little to do with each other.
be seen in terms of ‘clusters of relationships’, with
Between them a ‘sea of disjuncture’ has formed, and
some researchers lying outside the major spheres of
various ‘reefs’ associated with specialist areas such as
influence. See Figure 1 (circles have been added to
‘identity’, ‘philosophy’ and ‘professional development’.
show the clusters).
MacFarlane’s map is presented in Figure 2.
• Finally,
MacFarlane
(2012)
devised
a
tongue-
We decided to bring empirical data to bear on
in-cheek ‘map’ of the field of higher education
MacFarlane’s ‘archipelago’ and Tight’s ‘clusters
from
relationships’. We also decided to go further than the
his
recollections
from
working
in
the
of
Figure 2: Macfarlane’s higher education research archipelago (2012) vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
71
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
fragmentary analyses of Westbury, Budd, Budd and Magnusen, Kandlbinder and Tight. We wanted to analyse all citations from all extant volumes and issues of some key journals in the field, both in terms of what was published, and who cited whom (in the case of SHE we also looked at which keywords were used). Naturally, we had to narrow our focus so we chose two of the key journals in the field, SHE and HE.What would we find, and what might it tell us about citation practices? What would it tell us about key influences? Key scholars? What would it tell us about nationality biases, if any? What would the terrain of the discipline look like?
Studies in Higher Education (1976-2013) SHE is one of the leading journals in higher education. To
Figure 3: A detailed section of the doctoral education sub-network in SHE.
analyse it, 38 years of data was available, from the journal’s inception in 1976 until our arbitrary cut-off point of 2013
and Argyris, are connected to, or were cited by, a number
(see Calma & Davies, 2014).
of other authors. It is fair to infer from these clusters that
We analysed 32,738 references from 1,056 articles using Web of ScienceSM and Excel, and visualised them as network diagrams using the software Gephi™. The
research topics are shared; this assumes authors cite only articles relevant to their research. We drew the following conclusions from the data:
search was performed in July 2013 to include all SHE
• Most published. We found out that Richardson, Kember,
publications from the default year of 1900 to July 2013.
Becher, Boud and Elton have been the most published
In order to create a citations network for analysis, ‘nodes’ and ‘edges’ files were prepared. The nodes contained all citing authors and cited authors while the edges file
in the journal’s history. • Most cited. The most cited, on the other hand, were Entwistle, Martin, Ramsden, Biggs and Becher.
contained information about the relationship between
• Single or multiple authorship. There is a trend away
the two. Nodes and edges files were prepared in Excel
from solo towards multiple authorship. Single author
and imported into the Gephi™ software for each of the
works accounted for a greater proportion of articles in
‘authors’ and ‘keywords’ Gephi™ files.
the 80s/90s than in recent decades. The demands from
Unlike the authors’ Gephi™ files, the keywords files
academics to publish under a ‘publish or perish’ regime
were incomplete. This is because only articles from 2010
may have changed how researchers reconceptualised
onwards appeared to have associated keywords, leaving
the value of working with peers.
us only 218 articles with keywords. However, this still
We recently ran another analysis using Web of Science
represents the entire list of SHE articles with keywords.
on 9th June 2015, using the years 1900–July 2013. We
The keywords Gephi™ file resulted in 1,248 nodes and
found 1,132 articles and the following presents some
991 edges.
additional information about the data:
The result was a complex web of authors and cited
• Top countries. The top publishing countries – in
references too big to fit on paper. (For those interested in
decreasing order – are England, Australia, Scotland, USA
the gritty detail we provide a dynamic web-based version of the author data at http://tinyurl.com/pnby8xq). The diagram shows the entire history of the journal in
and South Africa. • Top years. The top publications years are 2013, 2012, 2009, followed by 2011 and 2010.
terms of its citation networks (i.e. who cited whom). It is,
We did another analysis of keywords. The online
as it were, the citation ‘geography’ of Studies in Higher
diagram (see http://tinyurl.com/p39cs3e) shows all the
Education. To see how these connections clustered, we
keywords and their connections to authors. (Discrete,
focus on just a few authors with family names starting
marginally or unconnected keywords – i.e. those used
with A. The resulting image is also available online for
only once by a single author – appear at the periphery of
detailed viewing: http://tinyurl.com/p3olkr6.
the circle, with the most strongly connected, most used
Drilling down further in this online diagram, we can see that authors such as Adelman, Anderson, Andrews, Archer
72
keywords appearing in the centre.) We found the following:
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
Table 1: Top 10 publishing countries No.
Country/Territory
Records
1
USA
431
2
Australia
3 4
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 2: Top 10 publishing institutions
% of 2,167
No.
Institution
19.889
1
Open University
45
2.077
358
16.521
2
University of Lancaster
44
2.030
England
344
15.874
3
Monash University
33
1.523
Canada
126
5.814
4
University of Sydney
32
1.477
5
Netherlands
114
5.261
5
University of Twente
30
1.384
6
South Africa
80
3.692
6
University Melbourne
30
1.384
7
Israel
70
3.230
7
University of New England
27
1.246
8
Scotland
56
2.584
8
University of Queensland
26
1.200
9
Sweden
52
2.400
9
University of Cape Town
26
1.200
10
Spain
50
2.307
10
University of Hong Kong
25
1.154
• Most discussed. The most frequently listed keywords
Records
% of 2,2167
identity, university leadership and student experience
(since their inception) throughout the journal’s history
(See Figure 3).
(excluding the keyword ‘higher education’) were
The subtle patterns of influence deserve more analysis
doctoral education, assessment, phenomenography,
than we can attempt here. Indeed, mining these data to
student learning and identity. From this we infer that
show the precise relationships has the potential to be a
these describe the most frequently discussed topics.
cottage industry.
• Top topic. Doctoral supervision is the single most discussed topic in SHE. A dynamic, interactive version
Higher Education (1972–2014)
of our keywords data-map is available online (http://
We also analysed the entire history of publication in
tinyurl.com/oqt59w4) (a fragment is provided above).
the journal HE. This amounted to 2,176 articles and
By zooming in, a detail of the doctoral education topic
68,009 references. Like SHE, we were interested in the
network shows that it branches out to sub-networks of
most published authors and the most cited authors. We
authors who coined the topic and the specific topics
have not yet done a keyword analysis. Instead, we were
of interest of those authors. It reveals a cluster of
particularly interested in the most cited articles, the top
seven major sub-topics/issues: university management,
publishing countries, the top publishing institutions and
assessment, transition and internationalisation, student
the top publishing years.
Table 3: Top 10 most cited articles No.
Publication year
1
Clark, B. R. (1983). Higher education system: academic organisation in cross-national perspective.
109
.160
2
Marton, F. & Saljo, R. (1976). On qualitative differences in learning (I, II): outcome and process. British Journal of Educational Psychology, v46.
103
.151
3
Slaughter S. & Leslie, L. (1997). Academic capitalism: politics, policies and the entrepreneurial university.
83
.122
4
Entwistle N. J. & Ramsden, P. (1983). Understanding student learning.
82
.121
5
Gibbons, M., Limoges, C., Nowotny, H., Schwartzman, S., Scott, P. and Trow, M. (1994). The new production of knowledge: the dynamics of science and research in contemporary societies
81
.119
6
Clark, B. R. (1998). Creating entrepreneurial universities: organisational pathways of transformation
58
.085
7
Becher, T. (1989). Academic tribes and territories: intellectual enquiry and the cultures of disciplines.
57
.083
8
Becher, T. and Trowler, P. (2001). Academic tribes and territories: intellectual enquiry and the cultures of disciplines.
52
.076
9
Prosser M. & Trigwell, K. (1999). Understanding learning and teaching: the experience in higher education.
46
.068
10
Biggs J. B. (1987). Student approaches to learning and studying
45
.066
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
No. of citations
% of 68,009
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
73
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 4: Top 10 most cited authors (as single or first author)
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 5: Most published authors No. Author
As first or single author
No. of times cited % of 68,009
As coauthor
% of 2,167
No.
Author
1
Entwistle, N. J.
472
.694
1
Meyer JHF
11
6
.784
2
Clark B. R.
396
.582
2
Kember D
9
5
.646
3
Marton, F.
391
.575
3
Richardson JTE
6
6
.554
4
Biggs, J.
369
.543
4
Enders J
7
4
.508
5
Ramsden, P.
258
.379
Prosser M
2
9
.508
6
Becher, T.
222
.326
5
Kyvik S
7
3
.461
7
Slaughter, S.
189
.278
6
Trigwell K
7
2
.415
8
Prosser, M.
117
.172
Marginson S
8
1
.415
9
Gibbons, M.
107
.157
Watkins D
6
3
.415
10
DiMaggio, P.J.
60
.088
Teichler U
7
1
.369
Altbach PG
7
1
.369
Harman G
7
1
.369
Over R
6
2
.369
7
We found that USA, Australia and England make up 52 per cent of 2,167 articles while Open University, University of Lancaster and Monash University provided the greatest number of published articles (122 of 2,167).
the terrain captured from the citation data from one key
Further, the top 20 universities included 10 from Australia
journal in the field. We found Meyer, Kember, Richardson
– indicating, again, a disproportionate influence. Higher
as the most published authors, while Enders and Prosser
Education also achieved its greatest annual output of
share the fourth spot.
articles in 2012 followed by 2009 and 2011.The top eight years of annual article output were all from the 2000s
Further findings
while 1973 ranked ninth and 1994 tenth. B.R. Clark’s 1983 article ‘Higher education system:
Besides showing the geography of influence in two of
academic organisation in cross-national perspective’ was
the best higher education journals, SHE and HE, we also
the most cited article in the entire history of HE (109
discovered something else. Our investigation showed
citations). See Table 3. Another article by Clark in 1988,
that the lists of ‘most cited’ authors in Australian and UK/
‘Creating entrepreneurial universities: organisational
European journals were almost identical (see Table 6). In
pathways of transformation’ can be seen in Table 3, also
Table 6 also illustrate the considerable overlap between
belonging to the top 10, and ranks 6th.
the findings in our two studies and those conducted by
From Table 4, Entwistle is the single most cited author (472 times) followed by Clark, Marton and Biggs.
Kandlbinder and Tight. Surprisingly, when comparing these studies with that
Empirical evidence is brought to bear on Macfarlane’s
of US journals we found that there was an international
notion of an ‘archipelago’. It shows the ‘islands’ of
‘split’ among ‘most cited’ authors. It appears there are
influence and the geography of the discipline – or at least
regional differences when comparing US journals to
Table 6: Most cited authors comparison between US, UK and Australian journals US
UK
Australian
Budd (1990)
Budd and Magnuson (2010)
Tight (2008)
Kandlbinder (2012)
Calma and Davies (2015)
Calma and Davies (2017)
1
Astin
Astin
Clarke
Marton
Entwistle
Entwistle
2
Pascarella
Pascarella
Ramsden
Biggs
Marton
Clark,
3
Centra
Tinto
Becher
Ramsden
Ramsden
Marton
4
Baldridge
Kuh
Biggs
Entwistle
Biggs
Biggs
5
Feldman
Cabrara
Boud
Prosser
Becher
Ramsden
74
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
UK/European and Australian journals. US journals tend
If an academic’s work does not feature as part of the
to exclusively cite US-based authors. They are parochial
landscape of a discipline, it is unclear to what extent he
in their citation patterns.
or she is making a difference – or even whether they are working in areas that count. The key question to ask
Implications of this finding
about citations, is not ‘how many do I have?’ but ‘are my citations part of an important, and growing, terrain in my
Calver jokes that ‘a narrowing of research diversity is as
discipline?’ It is only by analysing citation data that we
valuable to scholarship as atherosclerosis is to the cardiac
can make this determination. Aiming for high citations is
patient, yet one follows citation hunger as surely as the
important.*
other follows a fatty diet’.
*NB: No unnecessary citations have been used in the production of this paper.
We think this is a gloomy assessment of the situation. True, aiming for high citations as an end in itself is not
Martin Davies is Principal Fellow in Higher Education at
necessarily a good thing for the reasons he mentions.
the Melbourne Graduate School of Education, University
However, there is another way to look at the enterprise
of Melbourne, Australia and Senior Learning Advisor at
of an academic seeking citations. The narrowing of
Federation University, Australia
research diversity also means the refinement and shaping
Contact: wmdavies@unimelb.edu.au
of the entire enterprise of scholarship. To use a different metaphor, like the forces of nature of erosion by wind
Angelito Calma is a Senior Lecturer at the Williams Centre for
and water, citations effectively provide a useful map
Learning Advancement, Faculty of Business and Economics,
of the ‘geography’ of a discipline. The democracy of
The University of Melbourne.
citation making ensures good ideas become of central importance, and less worthy ideas become marginalised or ignored altogether. This provides a measure of the history of a discipline – where it has been, and potentially where it is headed. They arm us with useful information about what academics find important. Citation maps also provide a concrete representation of key influences. If an idea – no matter how old – becomes influential, it has the potential to change the landscape of the discipline.To use Calver’s analogy, narrowing of research interests does not ‘clot’ a discipline as much as shape its geography, free it from unwanted rubble, allow it to grow in productive directions. Of course, it is true that important work can be infrequently cited, and contrariwise, frequent citations need not equate to influence or importance,as Calver notes (Calver, 2015, p. 47). Non-existent papers can also be cited through referencing errors, misinterpreted information can be promulgated, and citations can be ‘inessential and perfunctory’ (Calver, 2015). This is no doubt the case, especially in the short-term. In the main, however, these infelicities are usually addressed in the normal process of slow, methodical, self-correcting scholarship and attrition. Over longer time spans ‘the truth will out’ (we don’t see
References Budd, J. M. (1990). Higher Education Literature: Characteristics of Citation Patterns. Journal of Higher Education, 61(1), 84-97. Budd, J. M., & Magnuson, L. (2010). Higher Education Literature Revisited: Citation Patterns Examined. Research in Higher Education, 51(3), 294-304. Calma, A., & Davies, M. (2017). Geographies of Influence: A Citation Network Analysis of Higher Education 1972-2014. Scientometrics, doi:10.1007/s11192016-2228-3.. Calma, A., & Davies, M. (2015). Studies in Higher Education 1976–2013: a retrospective using citation network analysis. Studies in Higher Education, 40(1), 4-21. Calver, M. (2015). Please don’t aim for a highly cited paper. Australian Universities’ Review, 57(1), 45-49. Kandlbinder, P. (2012). Recognition and Influence: The Evolution of Higher Education Research and Development. Higher Education Research and Development, 31(1), 5-13. Macfarlane, B. (2012). The Higher Education Research Archipelego. Higher Education Research and Development, 31(1), 129-131. Moosa, I. (2011). The demise of the ARC journal ranking scheme: An ex post analysis of the accounting and finance journals. Accounting and Finance 51(3), 809-836. Tight, M. (2008). Higher education research as tribe, territory and/or community: a co-citation analysis. Higher Education, 55(5), 593-605. Westbury, I., (1980), The Impact of the Journal of Curriculum Studies: A Citation Analysis. Curriculum Studies, 12(2) 149-156.
citations anymore to phlogiston research, phrenology, luminiferous aether, or a host of other previously viable, and quite legitimate, research domains.) An adequate understanding of the worth of cited information, can only be conducted longitudinally surveying the entire landscape of a discipline – as we have tried to do here. vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Getting cited: A reconsideration of purpose Martin Davies & Angelito Calma
75
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Dialectic relations between the neoliberal think-tank movement and academia in Australia Lester Thompson Southern Cross University
David Wadley University of Queensland
The context of contemporary universities restrains their ability to drive public policy. Yet, currently, they confront the relative success of a global network of neoliberal institutes, referred to as think-tanks, promoting freedoms derived from particular ideologies. Neoliberal reasoning has so moulded classical ideas of individual freedom into a radical hegemony of market supremacy that, in one application, it discounts scientific acknowledgement of anthropogenic climate change and seeks to deny its existence. This article links think-tanks, commercial and government media within a neoliberal alliance, which aims to ‘balance’ public information through ideological promulgations. It further contends that, largely of their own making, universities lack the philosophical positioning, will and the organisation effectively to meet this challenge. Situational analysis, strategy formulation and changes to practice are required before any meaningful response can be contemplated. Keywords: neoliberalism, think-tanks, public policy, academia, hegemony
The neoliberal view Becoming liberated Some years ago, Pierre Bourdieu (2003, p. 21) reflected that academia, was a failing ‘edifice of critical thought’ and ‘in need of reconstruction’. He saw a global hegemony of
one billion subscribers to News-linked programming. … He’s never changed his fundamental principles … [regarding] greater personal responsibility, smaller government, fewer regulations and support for open societies ... Rupert Murdoch is a corporate citizen of many countries, but above all else, he’s one of us. Most especially ... he’s a long-serving director of the IPA, as was his ... celebrated father, Sir Keith. (Abbott, 2013a)
neoliberal ideas emerging largely unscathed by critique from
Though liberal post-Enlightenment thought elevates
these increasingly isolated enclaves. Reflecting Bourdieu’s
empiricism over doctrine, Murdoch evidences his editorial
concerns, academia’s apparent irrelevance in Australian
influence and supports his media’s role both in agenda-
policy-making emerged when the 2013-15 Prime Minister,
setting on economic ideas (Karoly et al., 2012; McKnight
Tony Abbott, addressed the neoliberal Institute of Public
2013a; Denniss, 2015; Monbiot, 2016) and in disputing
Affairs’ (IPA) 70th Anniversary Dinner. He acknowledged
the academic consensus on climate change (McKnight,
the dominance of partisan information sources and the
2013b; Manne, 2013). In light of bio-physical and growth
ascendency of conservative agendas by arguing that:
issues, and impacts on public beliefs (Garnaut Institute,
Rupert Murdoch is probably the Australian who has most shaped the world through the 45 million newspapers that News Corp sells each week and [through] the
76
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
2011; Dunlap & McCright, 2008; Hmielowski, et al., 2014), this article examines neoliberal dissemination with reference to Murdoch’s 59 per cent share of the Australian vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
print market (Australian Broadcasting Corporation (ABC)
became ‘strongly related to political preferences, voting
FactCheck, 2013). In contrast to this powerful ideational
behaviours and gender’ (Garnaut Institute, 2011), due
project, a disparate and self-critical academic world
to the co-ordinated activities of a climate change ‘denial
is seen, on one hand, to be bound up in complex and
movement’ and its media wing (Dunlap & McCright, 2008;
sometimes incomprehensible ideas (Hmielowski et al.,
Hmielowski, et al., 2014, p. 867). Politicisation within the
2014, p. 867). On the other, and despite the efforts of
dominant media presents anthropogenic climate change
individual academics, it appears organisationally unable to
findings as flawed left-wing ideology (Denniss, 2015;
match the impact of the think tanks.The case is examined
McKnight, 2010, 2013b; Manne, 2013) and likewise as
in the domain of climate change.
‘left-wing bias’, when presented factually by the Australian
Climate change The divergence between ideological advocacy and
public broadcaster (ABC) (Chubb & Nash, 2012; Happs, 2013). Where did these discrepancies all begin?
reliably-evidenced approaches comes into sharp relief
Globalising an ideology
regarding the health of the global environment, since:
Angus Burgin’s (2012) historical work traces the roots
multiple studies published in peer-reviewed scientific journals show that 97 per cent or more of actively publishing climate scientists agree [that in 2013] climatewarming trends over the past century are very likely due to human activities (NASA, n.d.).
of the neoliberal social project to the classical-liberal (or
Overwhelming academic concern about human-induced
the first think tank, the Mont Peleron Society (MPS).
climate change contrasts with contemporary Australian
They were also aware of the rise of socialism and of John
survey findings that ‘only 50 per cent of respondents
Maynard Keynes’ economic interventionism. Anthony
... [agreed that] human activity ...[was] driving climate
Fisher, a war hero, organised to meet Hayek to discuss his
change’ (Garnaut Institute, 2011). This finding poses the
(libertarian) ideological battle for individual freedom. As a
questions, ‘what does the public know that the academic
foundational anti-socialist warrior and as an instigator of
experts don’t?’ and ‘how did they find out?’
the MPS, Hayek (1980) seems so to have acknowledged
laissez faire) ideals of the ‘Depression era’ and thinkers such as Karl Popper, Bertrand de Jouvenel,Wilhelm Röpke, Ludwig Von Mises, Friedrich Hayek and Milton Friedman. After the Second World War, these figures aligned to form
Earlier this decade, former PM Abbott was describing
Keynes’ (1936, pp. 383-84) opinion about the power of
concern about climate change as ‘crap’ (Readfearn, 2014)
academic ‘ideas’ that he and Fisher planned a movement to
and carbon pricing as a socialist plot (Holmes, 2013).
promote their more classically-liberal, economic thoughts.
Similarly, the IPA was denying any scientific consensus (Qiu,
Hayek discouraged Fisher’s political aspirations, while
2015) about environmental change because the ‘modern
assisting him to found private institutes furthering
climate is jogging along well’ (Carter, 2013). Recognising
economic discovery and influencing scholarly opinions.
that all 10 United States National Oceanic and Atmospheric
Mainstream politics was sidestepped when Hayek (1980,
Administration (NOAA, 2015) indicators had previously
p. 1) judged ‘the future of civilisation’ as dependent upon
shown ‘unequivocally that the Earth is warming’ (Wight,
capturing ‘the ear of a large enough part of the upcoming
2015 n.p.), scientific opinion regarding anthropogenic
generation of intellectuals all over the world’ to displace
climate change was strengthening (Carlton et al., 2015).Yet,
socialist notions from politics. According to Friedman
Australian public opinion about ‘climate change happening’
(n.d.), Hayek asked Fisher to ‘get the ideas of the public at
fell back from 84 (2008) to 73 per cent (2010) (Garnaut
large changed [in order] to change the general atmosphere
Institute, 2011; Chubb & Nash, 2012).This retreat is reason
of belief.’ Friedman presents the ideational change agenda
enough to scrutinise the disjunction between academic
as a public project, rather than as academic research
(Carlton et al., 2015) and public opinion (Cook et al., 2013).
and education. Fisher started with the establishment of
In 2012, Simon Copland of ‘Science Communication’
the Institute for Economic Affairs (IEA) in the United
(Australian National University) exposed the very strong
Kingdom, a body to which Friedman attributes the credit
bias against scientific evidence about climate change
for altering the ‘intellectual climate of Britain’ and for
within Murdoch articles. Later, Readfearn (201) reiterated
convincing Margaret Thatcher that neoclassical economic
that ‘the vast majority of news stories and opinion columns
(neoliberal) ideas should focus public policy. By the 1980s,
published by the dominant Murdoch press in Australia ...
Milton Friedman (n.d.) was applauding the ideational
promote long-debunked fringe views on climate science.’
transformation that neoliberal institutions had achieved
Lay beliefs, rather than reflecting scientific discovery,
in international economic policy.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
77
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
This IEA was the first of many think tanks which
which they could found ‘epistemic communities.’ Ironically,
Hayek (1980) saw as essential to saving the world from
theirs was a philosophical movement which eschewed
destruction.Today, they are networked by Fisher’s creation,
relativist perceptions, preferring an absolutist value base
the Atlas Foundation. In Australia, this alliance includes,
and accepting the ‘sacrosanct truth of certain basic beliefs’
inter alia, the IPA, the Centre for Independent Studies,
(Plehwe & Mills, 2012). It challenged the modernist view
the Australian Libertarian Society, the Australian Taxpayers
that humanity is increasingly apprehending, and developing
Alliance, the Bert Kelly Research Centre, and the Mannkal
better governance of, society and the environment. The
Economic Education Foundation. Globally, there are
neoliberals also disputed the Cartesian rationalism unifying
nearly 400 neoliberal bodies like North America’s CATO,
scientific discovery, preferring a more elemental philosophy
Heartland and Fraser institutes. Yet, counter to Hayek’s
of truth and ascendancy of individualism. This position
strategy, not all are respected research institutes focussed
came to represent a fundamental, individualist libertarian
upon informing academic opinion. (Past conservative
view underpinned by negative rights, property rights,
Australian) Prime Minister John Howard (2013) has
religious freedom and self-determination (Plehwe & Mills,
implied that organisations such as the IPA ‘try and
2012). Such absolutist ideas, though initially overt about
condition the public attitude.’ Likewise, Friedman (n.d.)
self-determination, self-interest, and freedom from coercion,
once remarked that:
were increasingly politicised by influential capitalists
The importance ... is that ... [CATO and thus other think-tanks are] today performing the kind of function that the Institute of Economic Affairs performed so well in Britain... in trying to alter the climate of opinion...
rather than purified by intellectual debate (Burgin, 2009,
Though Hayek thought this movement important in
liberal ideas of John Stuart Mill and early libertarians to
catching the ear of young intellectuals, Friedman saw
a collective view of the ‘market’ imbued with a virtuous,
the agenda as propagandising public views and values,
unassailable capitalist utopianism. This elevation involved
a project in which the various institutions have been
inherent contradictions which other authors have ably
remarkably effective (Crook, 2013).As such, the successful
identified (Gibson-Graham, 1996;Webber & Rigby, 1996).
pp. 164-65). That is to say, in the seeds of the movement was a rejection of academic rigour in favour of an ideology which capitalists edged towards political influence (Burgin, 2009; Monbiot, 2016). Hereby, they enlarged the classical
work of the Australian IPA (Miller & Schneiders, 2013)
Logically, the movement had to reject environmental-
and others in the region represents not only a media
conservationism, if only because freedom, interpreted
triumph but a potentially important learning process
through self-interest, property rights and an unregulated
for the disparate academic institutions which support
market, cannot
scientific pursuits. The relative dominance of neoliberal
restraint and regulations for the greater good (Monbiot,
ideas (Brenner & Theodore, 2002; Bourdieu, 2003) against
2016). In the virtuous neoliberal circle, growth becomes
the ineffectiveness of academic dissemination is reason
the overriding mantra: more investment allegedly
for considering the strategy that has led think tanks from
creates more jobs, enhances productivity and can thus
marginality to colonisation of news and government
increase supply: thereafter, more people are needed to
agendas (Crook, 2013; Manne, 2013). It is important first
provide the demand to consume the greater supply (cf.
to understand the messages that the neoliberal movement
Hamilton, 2003). Free markets are the vehicle through
seeks to convey, second to assess the logic of pursuing
which the immediate and longer-term needs of society
a predefined, unquestioned set of axioms and, third, to
are best addressed. Once ‘market freedom’ became the
comprehend factors behind the seeming flaccidity of the
movement’s paramount value, efforts to expose evidence
academic response.
of market externalities (including humans’ ecosystem
Redefining the agenda
countenance
arguments
requiring
damage) were constructed as socialistic threats to liberty (Monbiot, 2016). Seen as capable of providing solutions to
The change in public opinion which Hayek and Fisher
human issues, the market became central to a pervasive,
created and Friedman applauded was, according to Harvey
secular ideology.
(2005, p. 64), Heywood (2012) and Thompson and Coghlan (2015) underpinned by individualistic beliefs which
Neoliberal constructs
MPS members judged as fundamental to human society
In its own words, the global Atlas Network of ‘free-market
(Friedman, n.d., 2). For Plehwe and Mills (2012), early
organisations in over 80 countries [is committed] to the
neoliberals strived to develop basic norms and values upon
ideas and resources needed to advance the cause of liberty’
78
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
(Atlas, n.d.). However, the ‘cause of liberty’ is described in
Balancing the account
economic rather than individual terms, using concepts such
The agenda of Australia’s neoliberal movement can be
as those of the associated Economic Freedom Network’s
understood by examining a local (IPA) case-study. The
‘market freedom project’ (Fraser Institute, n.d.). The latter
Institute describes itself as:
is ‘devoted to promoting economic freedom around the world’ and ‘has member institutes in over 87 nations.’ Its agenda is presented as important to the IPA (Novak, 2014) and as uniting many network members. Now, rather than being informed by classical liberal philosophy, the members
an independent, non-profit public policy think tank, dedicated to preserving and strengthening the foundations of economic and political freedom. Since 1943, the IPA has been at the forefront of the political and policy debate, defining the contemporary political landscape. (IPA n.d.).
of this project consider that: The cornerstones of economic freedom are (1) personal choice, (2) voluntary exchange coordinated by markets, (3) freedom to enter and compete in markets, and (4) protection of persons and their property from aggression by others. Economic freedom is present when individuals are permitted to choose for themselves and engage in voluntary transactions ... The use of violence, theft, fraud, and physical invasions [is] not permissible in an economically free society, but otherwise, individuals are free to choose, trade, and cooperate ... In an economically free society, the primary role of government is to protect individuals and their property from aggression by others. The [Economic Freedom of the World] EFW index is designed to measure the extent to which the institutions and policies of a nation are consistent with this protective function… [or] identify how closely the institutions and policies of a country correspond with a limited government ideal, where the government protects property rights and arranges for the provision of a limited set of ‘public goods’ such as national defense [sic] and access to money of sound value, but little beyond these core functions (Gwartney et al., 2015, pp. 1-2).
Yet, its stated influence on political debate should be qualified if, as Beder (2006, p. 134) suggests, it: was set up in 1943 by a group of Melbourne businessmen concerned that the use of government intervention to regulate Australian society during the war might be extended .... The IPA’s mission was to oppose the Australian Labor Party (ALP) and assist with the establishment of the Liberal Party and the development of policies for it. Even if the IPA has, since the 1980s, refocussed upon a free-market agenda, it was founded on anti-interventionist stance and has strongly maintained party political links (Beder, 2006; Sourcewatch, 2011; Crook, 2013; Donovan, 2014). Hamilton (2012) suggests that much of its funding comes from the oil and mining industries and, hence, its policy advocacy towards economic development and climate change aligns with their interests. Beder’s (2006, pp. 134-36) work exposes close ties among certain Australian think tanks, the MPS, and American
The EFW project follows its absolutist philosophy by
think tanks beholden to business lobbies. Recently,
awarding its highest league rankings to democratically-
Hamilton (2012) saw similar political bias in the IPA’s
limited states such as Hong Kong and Singapore. It thus
‘long-running involvement in the climate debate’ (see
elevates economic over democratic freedom. Individual
also Sourcewatch, 2011; Chubb & Nash, 2012; Copland,
freedom is further downgraded in the manner of Hayek’s
2012). Commitment to the neoliberal agenda logically
preference for violent economic-liberal dictatorships (such
means that all environmentally-conscious restrictions on
as Pinochet’s Chile) over democracy judged as ‘devoid of
the free-market, especially those opposing the mining
liberalism’ (i.e. socialist organisation) (Monbiot, 2016).
industry, are against the interests of IPA corporate donors,
Hong Kong and Singapore, once again, occupy the top two positions ... [followed by] New Zealand, Switzerland, United Arab Emirates, Mauritius, Jordan, Ireland, Canada, and the United Kingdom and Chile... (Gwartney et al., 2015, p. vi).
are a threat to liberty, and are socialistic in character.
Business freedom subsumes individual freedom, an
of climate change. The text challenges the reliability of
absolute passed down by the MPS. This corporatist bias
research by most climate scientists and positions itself
is notable since there might once have been justification
as the ‘truthful’ exposé of their misinformation campaign
for academic collaboration with a project that promotes
about carbon-based environmental damage. Though
the free exchange of ideas, freedom of opinion and choice
NASA (2015) has found that ‘the 10 warmest years in the
as the best approach to factual and truthful argument.
instrumental record, with the exception of 1998, have now
Instead, free-market fundamentalism must be judged as a
occurred since 2000,’ Ian Plimer (2015) argues in the text
counterpoise to academic integrity.
that, for the last 18 years, carbon dioxide emissions have
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
To exemplify its stance, the IPA promotes a text entitled Climate Change: The Facts edited by its recent employee Alan Moran (2014). It features authors largely unrespected or unpublished (in refereed publications) in the field
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
79
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
been increasing but there has been no subsequent rise in
articles expressing environmental concern about carbon
global atmospheric temperatures. The thesis purports to
dioxide emissions, the IPA campaigned against it as biased
provide the definitive position, in that published, refereed
against the fossil fuel industry (Patterson, 2014 a, b, c).
explanations of human-induced climate change do not
The IPA commissioned an Australian private sector media
hold up to scrutiny, since contemporary temperature
analysis firm to carry out an ‘assessment of ABC bias by
increases are part of natural variation. Thus, in what
examining the ABC’s coverage of Australia’s energy choices.’
seems history’s greatest academic fraud, the huge array
It found against the ABC, since ‘the dominant message
of climate scientists is misleading the public out of self-
broadcast by the ABC about CSG [coal seam gas] and coal
interest. If correct, Climate Change would be an extremely
mining was that the industries have a negative impact on
important text and should generate a host of supportive
the environment’ (Patterson, 2014c). The Institute saw
appraisals by research institutes and unbiased scholars.
environmental reporting as biased because it ignored
Yet, it has not achieved public or academic acclaim and an
unrelated economic issues.
online Google search for book reviews finds mainly those
Likewise, Chubb & Nash (2012) demonstrate how the
written by contributing authors, other neoliberal think
esteemed climate scientist, James Hansen, while attending
tanks and obscure bloggers.
a speaking tour in Australia, was relatively ignored in
In climate science, the academic desire to promulgate
favour of the sceptic, Christopher Monckton, who had
‘truth’ has thus been politicised and marginalised towards
poor credentials regarding knowledge of climate science
denial, portrayed as ‘facts.’ Think tanks self-publish
and had inflated his résumé. The issue of ‘newsworthiness’
literature to oppose market intervention or climate
seems important even to public broadcasters and now they
action; they align with dominant commercial media
must evaluate the politics of presenting information before
(Abbott, 2013b; Crook, 2013; Donovan, 2014) and collude
it is aired. Any sensational ‘othering’ of climate scientists is
with industries which benefit from inaction (Beder, 2006;
newsworthy, whereas academic discovery is less so.
Hamilton, 2012). Since laypeople are influenced less by
Within the ‘conversation’ -- one which could actually
contemporary (and often complex) empirical research
be about the future of humanity -- absence of a counter
and more by predispositions and populist arguments,
to scientific opinion becomes ‘media bias’, even though
scientists and academics seem undermined, rather than
Goldenberg (2013) found that ‘conservative billionaires’
supported, by neoliberal interventionism.
secretively provided ‘nearly $120m (£77m) to more than
In the 1990s, Friedman (n.d.) argued that ‘at the
100 groups casting doubt about the science behind
moment we [neoliberals] have not won the argument in
climate change.’ If public information is being infiltrated
practice, but I think in the long run ideas will dominate,
by ideas from neoliberal think tanks and if academia’s
and I think we will win the argument in practice as well
information processes are attacked as having negligible
as on the intellectual level.’ The agenda is evidenced by
value, then, paradoxically, any libertarian desire for a free-
Millar and Schneiders’ (2013) finding that, between 2001
market of ideas will be supplanted by fixed precepts.
and 2013, the number of Australian media mentions of the
According to Burgin (2009, p. 164-65):
IPA rose from (approximately) 350 to 2,300 (per annum). This increased exposure assists the neoliberal movement in ‘conditioning’ the public view that some ideas set forth by scientists and public media are socialistic and therefore untrustworthy and, more particularly, the domain of the
The achievements of the neoliberal movement in the years following its emergence might be perceived … as manifestations of successful tactics and a failed philosophical project. In an irony of history, ideas tend to achieve political success through the very refusal to contest their own assumptions.
‘loony left’ (Greenslade, 2005). There is thus a conflation of protective ideas about the environment as an anti-
One issue in the apparent collaboration between
capitalist, socialistic, irrational agenda (Antonio & Brulle,
Australia’s IPA, the federal coalition government and an
2011; Goldenberg, 2013; Musil, 2013).
aligned media empire is that influence is essentially covert.
The public media, in the form of the ABC, has been subject
Of additional concern is that those who are unaware that
to sustained criticism by the IPA and aligned journalists for
they are being propagandised are impressionable and
its ‘left-wing’ bias (Warby, 1999 a, b; Manne, 2003; Hamilton,
therefore at risk of having their freedom of decision-
2012; Donovan, 2014; Patterson, 2014 a, b, c). To appear
making curtailed (Collison, 2003). This sort of ideological
balanced, it must match any exposure of environmental
hegemony was the reason for the founding of Hayek’s
or social ideas with neoliberal, free-market ones (Chubb &
‘freedom’ movement in the first place. The philosopher,
Nash, 2012; Happs, 2013). For example, after the ABC ran
de Jouvenel, of the MPS long ago recognised the tyranny
80
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
implicit in monopolistic control over information. ‘We
The Philosophical stance
are of course in danger of doing what the Socialists have
Invalidating the think tanks’arguments can be conceptually
done,’ he acknowledged. ‘The criticism of Capitalism
problematic, especially when dealing with ‘wicked
was their battle horse and they gave little thought to the
problems’ of indefinite futures and intergenerational
problems of Socialism.... we must not fall into the same
equity found in environmental science and politics. From
error’ (cited by Burgin, 2009, p. 164). Burgin adds that it
the outset, academia is effectively hamstrung by certain
is easier to agree in criticism of a ‘common enemy’ than
of its own philosophical precepts. First, as is widely
constructively to disagree.
accepted, theories can: simplify complex phenomena (scientific reductionism); suggest frameworks for ordering
The academy’s view
data and information; and help explain observations. Via these means, the academy regularly presents supporting
Rear guard positioning
evidence for anthropomorphic climate change. Yet,
Just as medicine and law have been challenged by para-
Haggett and Chorley (1967, p. 24) argue that theory
professionals and disruptive technologies, academia has
cannot be judged as ‘true’ (or ‘false’), nor can science ever
effectively lost its monopoly on fact, rigour and truth.
‘prove’ anything, since doubt is the driver of discovery.
Yet, Jason Wilson (2014) of the Swinburne Media Centre
The quest for explanation, in pursuit of ‘truth’, never ends
argues that the ‘freedom’ agenda of the IPA and fellow
and theories merely help in understanding reality. Hence,
travellers actually presents opportunities:
science cannot assert facts with the absolute certainty
A more vibrant and confident left might actually welcome the IPA’s prominence, for this really is the best that Australia’s intellectual right can do. IPA commentators (along with their colleagues in the Centre for Independent Studies) mostly incant the same old prescriptions for deregulation, marketisation and small government that have circulated through what Philip Mirowski calls the ‘neoliberal thought collective’ for decades. Whenever they stray from this familiar territory, their limitations quickly become apparent.
which could otherwise refute think-tank claims. Deniers
The academy’s challenge is to deal with think tanks
Fish (2016) explains that a material world exists prior to
in that that they have relegated environmental and
our descriptions of it, but that our observational capacities
social science as either ‘left agendas’ (i.e. biased), or
are limited and our descriptions rely on disciplinary
intellectually-conformist
(Plimer,
vocabularies. In the human process of ‘framing’ issues
2015). Academia faces a significant ideological force
(Leach et al., 2010), different vocabularies deliver different
which is consolidating worldwide. The intent now is
worlds. Thus, no neutral vantage point exists from which
to analyse the positioning of individual academics as
to achieve factual understanding. In practice, this means
distinct from the institutions of higher education and
not only that people can hold different opinions, but that
the public research sector. It will identify a number of
some actually dispute the relevance and substance of
hindrances and inconsistencies, viz.:
the firmest of evidence. They also reject the authority of
• Many academics aspire to pursue scientific and other
disciplinary frameworks and the stability and standards
‘truths’ or explanations in their work to the betterment
which they reflect. Thus, deniers argue that climate
of humanity
science is dominated by an institutional conformity into
(i.e. questionable)
• Yet, in attempting to counteract claims based on secular (market) ideology, academics cannot claim absolute truth in science • Their potency has been further diminished by
co-opt doubt as justification for their narratives and appoint contrary authorities to support their contentions. In this context, empirically-thin arguments permit ongoing controversy around strongly-supported evidence regarding global warming, greenhouse gases, the onset of the ‘anthropocene’, and the extent of human influence. Second, the social sciences have admitted postmodern thinking which fosters diversity and poly-vocality. Stanley
which experts must fit and with which their own ideas courageously contrast (Plimer, 2015). Historically, the Enlightenment transposed the power to define reality from divine authority to individual
postmodern interpretations in social science and the
reason
humanities
situated the locus of knowledge within individual
(Pomerantsev,
2016);
thereafter,
Descartes
• In leaning towards neoliberalism themselves, academic
human minds. Schopenhauer argued that the world was
institutions might lack the will or the organisation to
understood according to individual representations,
support individual researchers who dispute the think
but postmodernists subsequently added the argument
tanks’ prescriptions.
that reality is interpreted according to power and
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
81
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
influence. Mass media can now empower vocabularies
from being damaged; subsequently, the neoliberal project
which challenge empirically-strong theory, and sponsor
can condition academic behaviour and compromise
alternative ideological views. Though reality still exists
‘independence’ (Hil, 2015a). Corporatised institutions
and academia still seeks rigorously to discover it, captured
become focused on growth and managerial power
knowledge can reflect oppressive power. Postmodern
expands relative to academic autonomy. Constructive
critique thus removes the capacity for the definitive
‘public intellectuals’ are those who achieve grants,
demolition of empirically-unsupported logic. Savvy
international
politicians and media can authoritatively recruit public
Contrarians and critics achieve isolation and, accordingly,
support for illogical, emotional argument about biased
the rewards for confrontation with agencies promoting
science and left-wing conspiracies.The emotional realities
public misinformation are scant. Such discourse is judged
of climate change are unappetising and people might
inferior to the aspiration of academic institutions seeking
shrink from the ‘truth’.
higher international acknowledgement and private sector
awards
or
assist
private
enterprise.
Writers who acknowledge postmodern critiques have
sponsorship. As Fisher and Hayek’s ideational project
become soft targets for outsiders hostile to the academic
approaches Friedman’s benchmark of success, these
enterprise (Hil, 2015a, p. 13). Indeed, the social sciences
influences on academia can act to de-motivate academics
may be pilloried in respect of the topics for which their
and thereafter proceed without undue scrutiny.
members receive research grants (cf. Carr, 2016).To avoid external criticism, managerial institutions might redirect
Organisational factors
funds towards practically-oriented and instrumentalist
Now that their former monopoly on process and knowledge
endeavours that display ‘innovation.’ Recursively, such
is disputed, how can universities and public research
universities reduce their ability to counter the think tanks,
bodies better deploy information? Recent corporate
the domain of which is centrally within the social, rather
practice has been problematic, judging first by two higher-
than the hard, sciences.This step also moves the academy
level examples which require attention before we progress
away from a mission to pursue (and promote) ‘truth’
to frontline activities in Australia’s 42 universities.
which, though elusive, has long motivated academics. Since, in the mass media, ideology needs only a consistent and positive spin to attract public support, it becomes possible to overlook the use of evidence, and the underpinnings of reason (cf. O’Grady, 2002). Policy must not jettison reason in favour of affect, nor should ‘spin’ replace logic in public problem solving. Recall that 97% of climate science academics understand the implications of anthropomorphic change, have concerns about what the ‘truth’ might be, and take their role seriously.
Climate change is inevitably controversial, even barring the input of neoliberal think tanks. In one notable imbroglio, the Abbott government [recently] found $4m for the climate contrarian Bjørn Lomborg to establish his “consensus centre” at an Australian university, even as it struggled to impose deep spending cuts on the higher education sector (Taylor, 2015). Lomborg’s published work on climate has been evaluated by the Union of Concerned Scientists as ‘seriously flawed’ and failing ‘to meet basic standards of credible scientific
Lacking the will
analysis’ (UCS, n.d.). Meanwhile, the Abbott Government’s
Though think tanks commonly claim to be ‘independent’
chief executive appointee to the Commonwealth Science
as if immaculately funded, they are in practice beholden
and Industry Research Institute (CSIRO), Larry Marshall
to their donors (Beder, 2006; Hamilton, 2012). Once,
(ex Silicon Valley), quickly announced up to 175 job cuts
universities, too, claimed to be autonomous and
to its oceans and atmosphere division, because ‘the climate
independent. Yet in recent years, they have started to
changing... question has been answered’ (Pitman, 2016).
extol their virtues regarding access to private student
His incursion, since moderated, prompted a worldwide
fees, outside
philanthropy.
outcry among climate and other scientists who recognise
Problematically for motivated academics, these extra-
the value of CSIRO modelling (Hannam, 2016; Thodey,
mural sources can be diverse, involving institutional
2016). These two macro illustrations point to political
connections and obligations which extend globally or
disruptions engulfing whole institutions which reduce
corporately and which might relegate well-evidenced
their public credibility.
research
funding
and
concerns about local community welfare.
Notwithstanding
scholars’
continuing
aspirations
In the globalised university, argumentation and
towards ‘truth’, the lower-level issue of academic voice
campaigns are avoided to prevent administrative ‘brands’
becomes challenging. It exists in an organisational work
82
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
context which assumes ubiquitous,self-seeking rationalism
either advertise to attract students (Hil, 2015b) or direct
and, which, within its schools and departments applies
media enquiries to individual researchers with minimal
managerialism both to reward standardised pursuits
support, unless corporate funding is a likely outcome.
(Cupples & Pawson, 2012; Rea, 2016) and discourage non-
Cupples and Pawson (2012) use Foucauldian analysis
conformity (Giroux, 2010). Society is told that markets can
to argue that the culture of the academy contains
solve problems of the public good, and academia applies
contradictions which make managerial auditors incapable
this instrumental rationality somewhat uncritically in
of adequately defining outcomes for academic activities in
reproducing employment-ready, ‘competent’ graduands
a market society. More simply:
and knowledge products (Giroux 2010; Hil, 2015b). Now, particularly in the United States, it is allegedly infantilising students in teaching practice (Lukianoff & Haidt, 2015; Sherlock, 2015). This tendency can only diminish the robust intellectual atmosphere (‘without fear or favour’) which universities officially trumpet and which might act
the centre has lost its authority, not devolved it, because the dispersal of power leads to a fragmented, disjointed and messy outcome where agencies and individuals begin to negotiate their own interests, reinterpret the lines of accountability and exploit the ambiguities inherent in the evaluation and assessment process (Cupples & Pawson, 2012, p. 20).
to counter the arguments of some of the think tanks. For their part, think-tanks remunerate activist roles
Assuming that the reach of the think tanks will in
following the neoliberal agenda and in consort with
future grow rather than recede, the questions which arise
aligned media. Rather than waiting months or years for
from this organisational appraisal are threefold: (a) to
grants with low chances of success, they have the ability
what extent should the universities (and public scientific
quickly to mount special-focus projects, using existing
outlets) reorganise to meet forthcoming challenges; (b)
staff, calling on their sponsors, or crowd-sourcing to
have they the desire to do so or are they now themselves
create the necessary resources. A task force approach
co-opted as part of an unstoppable neoliberal project;
can be directed to focussed and applied research or
and (c) is some accord with selected think tanks socially
critique, just as managed democracies achieve success
desirable, given the collateral which the latter have
within global economics. In this contest of ideas, the
accumulated? Answers will determine whether there is
teaching and research (T and R) academic is hampered.
space for contestation and redefinition of goals within
Getting involved in public politics can be stressful and
the academy and negotiation of better accountability
distracting. If fortunate and productive, s/he might
measures for recognising the public good. There is little
achieve uninterrupted research on a half-sabbatical basis:
point in rushing into putative strategies until due analysis
otherwise, the regular course is to work up to 40 per cent
and these fundamental responses are to hand. To do so
of full time equivalence on ongoing investigations. Solo
would contravene the measured, scientific principles on
projects might indicate personal ‘potential’, but can be
which academia stands.
risky career-wise; alternatively, the assembly of project teams could take months before any (grant) progress
Conclusion
occurs. Basic research attracts significant institutional effort but will likely escape popular commendation or
We have discussed how a very effective global movement
even influence. Research institutes might have more
latterly committed to a strong ideology of market
opportunities, but much of their activity proceeds
freedom has shaped public understanding of significant
under tied contracts with limited scope for vicarious
issues affecting the future of humanity. Rather than
engagement. Moreover, around 80 per cent of research-
lively participation, the academic response has lagged
only, full-time equivalent staff, throughout universities,
(Bourdieu 2003). Maxwell (2014) perceives universities as
work under fixed-term contracts (Rea, 2016).
organised rationally for pursuing knowledge, rather than
Though keen to praise individual academics who
for solving the problems of a complex world. By contrast,
receive teaching and, sometimes, research awards,
Bawden (2007, pp. 299-300) seeks cognitive strategies to
universities are unlikely to advocate a corporate position
address the contemporary ecological and political ‘mess’
or encourage disputation with particular social or
we face. His prescription is intellectually demanding, in
political movements. Hence, the think tanks and their
that ‘we can’t solve problems by using the same level
media partners can operate comfortably in the thick of
of cognitive development we used to create them’, thus
politics. Their strategic advantage additionally overcomes
requiring a constant renewal of ‘systems of knowledge and
university marketing and information departments, which
systematic processes of knowing.’ Such advances require
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
83
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
some coordinated international networking (cf. the Atlas
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Contact: lester.thompson@scu.edu.au
Foundation) of universities along disciplinary lines, and national strategies for accessing empirically-supportable
Dr David Wadley lectures in the School of Earth and
knowledge through shared databases and informed
Environmental Sciences at The University of Queensland.
spokespersons (i.e. science educators or communicators).
His research interests lie in studies of rationality and its
One interpretation of Bawden’s (2007) analysis is that
alternatives applied to global and local issues.
there is need for actions that are creative (cognitivelydeveloped), cooperative
(strategically
focussed
as
structural reforms) and collectivist (socially organised for the common good), perhaps ironically reproducing the strategic success of the neoliberal movement. It established the MPS as a core for informing its precepts, then developed a plethora of well-resourced, activist think-tanks strategically linked to the market agenda, and finally created a collectivist network which supported its structures with moral goals, connective projects and internationalist credentials. Many
academics
are
individually
isolated
and
overwhelmed by the teaching, research and administration accountabilities (Chatterton et al., 2010; Kliewer, 2013). Nonetheless, the consequences of ignoring the external neoliberal agenda are significant. Even the world’s lesser governments are now acting on climate change and, if they can mobilise, then why can academia not? Its solution might begin with a meta-analysis involving general recognition of the success of the neoliberal movement. The think tanks must be seen not as upstarts but as a valid object of study; the mission of the academy internationally must be discussed; and planning processes which define research objectives must include efforts to promulgate lines of enquiry more effectively and efficiently in the public domain. The agenda moves beyond the current promotion of scholarly supernovas: in the contemporary neoliberal context, both corporate and self-protection is required if academics are to promote discovery that is too complex, contested, methodologically challenging and therefore difficult for management to acknowledge as valid effort. Through activism and collective bargaining, recognised activity might expand to include the analysis and rebuttal of public misconceptions (Giroux, 2010; Hurst & Wall, 2011). The needs of democracy require that the output of departments and research institutes more thoroughly acknowledge integrated information dissemination, policy reform and wider academic advocacy. These various lines should be the subject of future research enquiry. Dr Lester Thompson is a Senior Lecturer at Southern Cross University (Coolangatta, Australia). He currently teaches in the Master of Social Work program, focussing upon social policy and law and community work studies.
84
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
References Abbott, T. (2013a). Address to the 70th anniversary dinner. (4 April). The Institute of Public Affairs – The Voice of Freedom since 1943. National Gallery of Victoria. Retrieved from http://nofibs.com.au/2013/04/07/ipa-and-murdoch-arefreedoms-discerning-friends-abbott/ Abbott, T. (2013b). Tony Abbott likens carbon tax to socialism in speech to Tasmanian Liberal Party conference. (26 October). Australian Broadcasting Corporation (ABC) News. Retrieved from http://mobile.abc.net.au/news/201310-26/abbott-attacks-shortencarbon-tax-socialism-labor/5047758 Antonio, R.J. & Brulle, R.J. (2011). The unbearable lightness of politics: climate change denial and political polarization. The Sociological Quarterly, 52 (2), 195-202. Atlas, (nd). Strengthening The Worldwide Freedom Movement. Retrieved from https://www.atlasnetwork.org/ Australian Broadcasting Corporation FactCheck. (2013). FactCheck: does Murdoch own 70 per cent of newspapers in Australia? Sydney: Australian Broadcasting Corporation. Retrieved 18/01/2016 from http://theconversation. com/factcheck-does-murdoch-own-70-of-newspapers-in-australia-16812 Bawden, R.J. (2007). Pedagogies for persistence: cognitive challenges and collective competencies. International Journal of Sustainable Development and Innovation, 2 (3), 299-314. Beder, S. (2006) Free Market Missionaries: The Corporate Manipulation of Community Values. London: Sterling. Bourdieu, P. (2003). Firing Back: Against the Tyranny of the Market. London: Verso Books. Brenner, N. & Theodore, N. (2002). Cities and the geographies of “actually existing neoliberalism”. Antipode, 34 (3), 349-379. Burgin, A. (2009). The Return of Laissez-Faire. Doctoral Dissertation. Cambridge [Mass.]: Harvard University. Burgin, A. (2012). The Great Persuasion: Reinventing Free Markets since the Depression. Cambridge [Mass.]: Harvard University Press. Carlton, J. S., Perry-Hill, R., Huber, M. & Prokopy, L.S. (2015). The climate change consensus extends beyond climate scientists. Environmental Research Letters, 10( 9). Retrieved from http://iopscience.iop.org/ article/10.1088/1748-9326/10/9/094025/meta Carr, K. (2016). Liberals demonstrate hostility to humanities. The Australian, (7 September), p. 31. Carter, B. (2013). Report gives the truth about climate at last. (17 September). The Telegraph. Retrieved from http://www.ipa.org.au/news/2962/report-givesthe-truth-about-climate-at-last Chatterton, P., Hodkinson, S. & Pickerill, J. (2010). beyond scholar activism: making strategic interventions inside and outside the neoliberal university. ACME, An International Journal of Critical Geographies, 9 (20), 724-755. Retrieved from file:///C:/Users/drljt/Downloads/868-2686-1-SM.pdf Chubb, P. & Nash, C. (2012). The politics of reporting climate change at the Australian Broadcasting Corporation. Media International Australia, Incorporating Culture & Policy 144, 37-48. Retrieved from http://search. informit.com.au/documentSummary;dn=716595050387204;res=IELLCC> ISSN: 1329-878X. vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Collison, D.J. (2003). Corporate propaganda: its implications for accounting and accountability. Accounting, Auditing and Accountability, 16 (5), 853-886.
Haggett, P. and Chorley, R.J. (1967). Models, Paradigms and the New Geography, in Chorley, R.J. and Haggett, P. (eds), Models in Geography. London: Methuen.
Cook, J., Nuccitelli, D., Green, S.A., Richardson, M., Winkler, B., Painting, R., Way, R., Jacobs, P. & Skuce, A. (2013). Quantifying the consensus on anthropogenic global warming in the scientific literature, Environmental Research Letters 8. Retrieved 18/01/2016 from http://www.eenews.net/ assets/2013/05/16/document_cw_01.pdf
Hamilton, C. (2003). Growth Fetish. Crows Nest [N.S.W.]: Allen & Unwin.
Copland, S. (2012). The Murdoch paradox: bias in climate reporting. (24 September) Crikey. Retrieved 26/10/2015 from http://www.crikey.com. au/2012/09/24/the-murdoch-paradox-bias-in-climate-reporting/ Crook, A. (2013). Institute of Liberal Party policy? What the IPA will get from Abbott. (2013, September 6).Crikey. Retrieved 25/10/2015 from http://www. crikey.com.au/2013/09/06/institute-of-liberal-party-policy-what-the-ipa-willget-from-abbott/ Cupples, J. & Pawson, E. (2012). Giving an account of oneself: The PBRF and the neoliberal university. New Zealand Geographer, 68, 14-23. Denniss, R. (2015). Of clowns and treasurers: Joe Hockey and the myth of Coalition economic management. (July). The Monthly, Collingwood. Donovan, M.N. (2014). The ABC, the IPA and Abbott’s debts to Murdoch. (5 February). Independent Australia. Retrieved 25/10/2015 from https:// independentaustralia.net/politics/politics-display/tony-abbotts-debts-tomurdoch-the-ipa-and-the-abc,6133 Dunlap, R.E. & McCright, A.M. (2008). A widening gap: Republican and Democratic views on climate change. Environment 50, 26–35. Ehrenhalt, A. (1995). The Lost City: The Forgotten Virtues of Community in America. New York: Basic Books. Fish, S. (2016). Donald and the postmodernists. Australian Financial Review, (26 August), Review 1, 6. Fraser Institute, (n.d.). Free the World. Retrieved from http://www.freetheworld. com/ Friedman, M. (n.d.). Milton Friedman: Friedman talks on Friedrich Hayek. Retrieved from http://www.youtube.com/watch?v=WKkehoC5khc (Also retrieved: ‘Milton Friedman talks about Friedrich Hayek on the FA Hayek Auditorium at the Cato Institute’ http://www.allvoices.com/people/Friedrich_Hayek/ video/78835342-milton-friedman-remembers-friedrich-hayek ) Friedman, M. (n.d.2). Milton Friedman Interview. Commanding Heights. Retrieved from http://www.pbs.org/wgbh/commandingheights/press_site/people/ friedman_intv.html Gibson-Graham, J.K. (1996). The End of Capitalism (as we Knew it). Oxford: Blackwell. Goldenberg, S. (2013). Secret funding helped build vast network of climate denial think tanks. (15 February) The Guardian. Retrieved 23/10/2015 from http://www.theguardian.com/environment/2013/feb/14/funding-climatechange-denial-thinktanks-network Garnaut Institute (2011). Garnaut Climate Change Review: Australians’ Views on Climate Change. Retrieved 15/01/2016 from http://www.garnautreview.org. au/update-2011/commissioned-work/australians-view-of-climate-change.htm Giroux, H. (2010). Public values, higher education and the scourge of neoliberalism: politics at the limits of the social. Culture Machine (Interzone) Retrieved from http://www.culturemachine.net/index.php/cm/article/ viewArticle/426 Greenslade, R. (2005) Lust for Blood, The Guardian, 1 October, Retrieved 30/10/2015 from: http://www.theguardian.com/books/2005/oct/01/ highereducation.news Gwartney, J., Lawson, R. & Hall, J. (2015). Economic Freedom of the World: 2015 Annual Report. Toronto: Fraser Institute. Retrieved from http://www. freetheworld.com/datasets_efw.html
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Hamilton, C. (2010). Appeasing climate denial at the ABC. Overland, 200, Spring, 73-78. Hamilton, C. (2012). The shadowy world of IPA finances. ABC The Drum (24 February). Retrieved from http://www.abc.net.au/news/2012-02-24/hamiltonthe-shadowy-world-of-ipa-finances/3849006 Hannam, P. (2016). ‘Dismay’: NASA scientist appeals to CSIRO not to cut global climate efforts. Sydney Morning Herald, 12 May. Retrieved from http://www. smh.com.au/environment/climate-change/dismay-nasa-appeals-to-csiro-not-tocut-global-climate-efforts-20160511-gosaco.html Happs, J. (2013). The climate of bias at their ABC. (30 July). Quadrant. Retrieved 18/01/2016 from https://quadrant.org.au/opinion/doomedplanet/2013/07/the-climate-of-bias-at-their-abc/ Harvey, D. (2005). A Brief History of Neoliberalism. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Hayek, F.A. (1980). Untitled letter to Anthony Fisher. (1 January). Retrieved from: http://fc95d419f4478b3b6e5f-3f71d0fe2b653c4f00f32175760e96e7.r87.cf1. rackcdn.com/811DEA7AA41B43348847A8456C292E80.pdf Heywood, A. (2012). Political Ideologies: An Introduction, [5th ed.], Houndsmills [Hants]: Palgrave Macmillan. Hil, R. (2015a). Whackademia: An Insider’s Account of the Troubled University. Sydney: University of New South Wales Press. Hil, R. (2015b). Selling Students Short. Crows Nest [N.S.W.]: Allen & Unwin. Hmielowski, J. D., Feldman, L., Myers, T.A., Leiserowitz, A. & Maibach, E. (2014). An attack on science? Media use, trust in scientists, and perceptions of global warming. Public Understanding of Science, 23 (7) 866–883. Holmes, D. (2013). Is climate change a socialist plot? (31 October). The Conversation. Retrieved 15/01/2016 from http://theconversation.com/ is-climate-change-a-socialist-plot-19730 Howard, J.W. (2013). ‘’They just try and condition the public attitude on these matters.’’ Cited in Miller R. & Schneiders B. (2013) Is this neo-liberal evangelist changing the political and corporate landscape? Royce Millar and Ben Schneiders go inside the Institute of Public Affairs. The Age, 25 August. Retrieved from http://www.theage.com.au/federal-politics/federal-election-2013/freeradicals-20130824-2sik1.html#ixzz3pXw1XVux Hurst, D. & Wall, A.F. (2011). Repoliticizing higher education assessment within neoliberal globalization. Policy Futures in Education, 9 (5), 560-572. Institute of Public Affairs (2013). No title. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved from http://www.ipa.org.au/help/search?cx=006108615115122194453 per cent3Am4td7mqbdeg&cof=FORID per cent3A10&ie=UTF8&q=freedom&sa=Search Institute of Public Affairs, (nd). About the IPA. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved from http://www.ipa.org.au/about Karoly, D., Slattery, C., Townley, K. & Adams, K.H. (2012). Biased newspaper reporting on the carbon pricing mechanism. (18 December). The Conversation. Retrieved from http://theconversation.com/biased-newspaper-reporting-on-thecarbon-pricing-mechanism-11373 Keynes, J.M. (1936). The General Theory of Employment, Interest and Money [Book 6]. London: Macmillan. Kliewer, B. W. (2013). Why the civic engagement movement cannot achieve democratic and justice aims. Michigan Journal of Community Service Learning, 19 (2), 72. Academic OneFile. Leach, M., Scoones, I. & Stirling, A. (2010). Dynamic Sustainabilities: Technology, Environment, Social Justice. London: Earthscan.
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
85
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Lukianoff, G. & Haidt, J. (2015). The coddling of the American mind. The Atlantic, September. Retrieved 06/10/2016 from http://www.theatlantic.com/ magazine/archive/2015/09/the-coddling-of-the-american-mind/399356/ Manne, R. (2003). McCarthy’s ghost in ABC attack. (2 June). Sydney Morning Herald. Retrieved 30/10/2015 from http://www.smh.com.au/ articles/2003/06/01/1054406072436.html Manne, R. (2013). Why Rupert Murdoch can’t be stopped: the political empire of the News Corp chairman. (November). The Monthly. Retrieved 23/10/2015 from https://www.themonthly.com.au/issue/2013/november/1383224400/robertmanne/why-rupert-murdoch-can-t-be-stopped
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Pitman, A. (2016). CSIRO boss’s failed logic over climate science could waste billions in taxes. (5 February). The Conversation. Retrieved, from: http:// theconversation.com/csiro-bosss-failed-logic-over-climate-science-could-wastebillions-in-taxes-54249 Plehwe, D. & Mills, T. (2012). Defending capitalism: the rise of the neoliberal thought collective (Part 1). New Left Project (12 March). Retrieved from http://www.newleftproject.org/index.php/site/article_comments/defending_ capitalism_the_rise_of_the_neoliberal_thought_collective_part_1 Plimer, I. (2015). Why climate models are failing, In A. Moran (ed.), Climate Change: The Facts. Woodsville [NH]: Stockade Books.
Maxwell, N. (2014). How Universities can Help Create a Wiser World: The Urgent need for an Academic Revolution. Imprint Academic: Exeter.
Pomerantsev, P. (2016). Why we’re post-fact. Granta Magazine (20 July). Retrieved 10/09/2016 from https://granta.com/why-were-post-fact/
McKnight, D. (2010). A change in the climate? The journalism of opinion at News Corporation. Journalism 11 (6), 693–706.
Qiu, L. (2015). Santorum: UN climate head debunked widely cited 97 per cent climate change consensus figure. Politifact (2 September). Retrieved from http:// www.politifact.com/truth-o-meter/statements/2015/sep/02/rick-santorum/ santorum-un-climate-head-debunked-widely-cited-97-/
McKnight, D. (2012). Rupert Murdoch: An Investigation of Political Power. Crows Nest [N.S.W.], Allen & Unwin. McKnight, D. (2013). Murdoch’s Politics: How One Man’s Thirst for Wealth and Power Shapes our World. London: Pluto Press. McKnight, D. (2013b). Murdoch and his influence on Australian political life. (7 August). The Conversation. Retrieved, from http://theconversation.com/ murdoch-and-his-influence-on-australian-political-life-16752 Millar, R. & Schneiders, B. (2013). Is this neo-liberal evangelist changing the political and corporate landscape? Royce Millar and Ben Schneiders go inside the Institute of Public Affairs. The Age, 25 August. Retreived from http://www.theage. com.au/federal-politics/federal-election-2013/free-radicals-20130824-2sik1. html#ixzz3pXw1XVux Monbiot, G. (2016). Neoliberalism: the ideology at the root of all our problems. (15 April). The Guardian. Retrieved from http://www.theguardian.com/ books/2016/apr/15/neoliberalism-ideology-problem-george-monbiot Moran, A. (ed.) (2015). Climate Change: The Facts. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Musil, B. (2013). The vast climate conspiracy. (11 October). Australian Huffington Post. Retrieved from http://www.huffingtonpost.com/bob-musil/ climate-change-conspiracy_b_4064476.html?ir=Australia
Rea, J. (2016). Critiquing neoliberalism in Australian universities. Australian Universities’ Review, 58 (2), 9-14. Readfearn, G. (2014). What does Australian Prime Minister Tony Abbott really think about climate change? (16 June). The Guardian. Retrieved from http:// www.theguardian.com/environment/planet-oz/2014/jun/16/what-doesaustralian-prime-minister-tony-abbott-really-think-about-climate-change Sherlock, R. (2015). How political correctness rules in America’s student “safe spaces”. The Telegraph (London) (28 November). Retrieved from http://www. telegraph.co.uk/news/worldnews/northamerica/usa/12022041/How-politicalcorrectness-rules-in-Americas-student-safe-spaces.html Sourcewatch (2011). The Institute for Public Affairs, Centre for Media and Democracy, Retrieved from http://www.sourcewatch.org/index.php/Institute_of_ Public_Affairs Taylor, L. (2015). Abbott government gives $4m to help climate contrarian set up Australian centre. (17 April). The Guardian. Retrieved from http://www. theguardian.com/environment/2015/apr/17/abbott-government-gives-4m-tohelp-climate-sceptic-set-up-australian-centre
NASA (2015). Research news: NASA, NOAA find 2014 warmest year in modern record. Retrieved from: http://www.giss.nasa.gov/research/news/20150116/
Thodey, D. (2016). An international response to the proposed CSIRO cuts to climate research. Retrieved from: http://www.csiro.au/en/News/Newsreleases/2016/Public-statement-Chairman-David-Thodey (see bottom right hand side of webpage for a hyperlink to the petition of international scientists).
NASA (n.d.). Global climate change: vital signs of the planet. Retrieved from: http://climate.nasa.gov/scientific-consensus/
Thompson, L.J. & Coghlan, J. (2015). Neoliberalism by stealth: exposing the flaw of neoliberal understandings of ‘freedom’. Social Alternatives, 34 (3) 60-66.
NOAA (2015). Global Analysis Annual 2015. National Oceanic and Atmospheric Administration. Retrieved 05/02/2016 from: https://www.ncdc.noaa. gov/sotc/global/201513
Union of Concerned Scientists. (n.d.). The skeptical environmentalist. Union of Concerned Scientists. Retrieved from http://www.ucsusa.org/global_warming/ solutions/fight-misinformation/ucs-examines-the-skeptical.html#.VrP0ZOb0-PQ
Novak, J. (2014). 2014 IPA Economic Freedom Index. IPA. Retrieved 23/10/2015 from https://www.ipa.org.au/portal/uploads/PAPER-ECONOMIC_ FREEDOM_INDEX_2014-FINAL.pdf
Warby, M. (1999a). Media bias: It’s as easy as ABC. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved from: https://www.ipa.org.au/sectors/mediatelecommunications-and-it-unit/news/630/media-bias-it’s-as-easy-as-abc/pg/12
O’Grady, P. (2002). Relativism. Chesham: Acumen.
Warby, M. (1999b). Your ABC and a big case of bias. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved 30/10/2015 from https://www.ipa.org.au/sectors/mediatelecommunications-and-it-unit/news/627/your-abc-and-a-big-case-of-bias/ pg/13
Patterson, J. (2014a). Independent report reveals ABC biased against fossil fuels. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved https://ipa.org.au/ publications/2275/independent-report-reveals-abc-biased-against-fossil-fuels Patterson, J. (2014b). Environment of fear as ABC fails bias test. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved 30/10/2015 from https://www.ipa.org.au/ news/3155/environment-of-fear-as-abc-fails-bias-test Patterson, J. (2014c). Public broadcaster or green activist? How the ABC spins Australia’s energy choices. Melbourne: Institute of Public Affairs. Retrieved 30/10/2015 from http://ipa.org.au/portal/uploads/IPA-Public-broadcaster-orgreen-activist-How-the-ABC-spins-Australias-energy-choices-August2014.pdf
86
Ideology, ‘truth’ and spin Lester Thompson & David Wadley
Webber, M.J. & Rigby, M.L. (1996). The Golden Age Illusion: Rethinking Postwar Capitalism. New York: Guilford Press. Wight, J. (2015). Evidence for global warming. Sceptical Science. Retrieved from https://www.skepticalscience.com/evidence-for-global-warming.htm Wilson, J. (2014). No, the IPA is not secretly running Australia. Swinburne Institute for Social Research. Retrieved from http://www.swinburne.edu.au/ media-centre/news/2014/06/no-the-ipa-is-not-secretly-running-australia.html
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities A mixed methods pilot study Michelle Gander Murdoch University
This article confirms the reliability of a protean and boundaryless career attitudes scale, tested in a pilot study. Additionally, it summarises the results of this study into the career attitudes of professional staff in Australian and UK universities. A mixed methods approach was taken using a survey consisting of both closed questions on a 5-point Likert type scale, and an open text question that asked for respondents’ career stories. The convenience sample consisted of 19 staff from Australia and 12 from the UK. The findings suggest that professional staff create a hybrid approach to managing their career, showing aspects of protean, boundaryless and traditional career attitudes and that there are no significant differences between the career attitudes of these staff in Australia and the UK. There is a clear need for further research to test these results, which could be used to inform universities’ human resource strategies. Keywords: Professional staff, career theory, protean, boundaryless, hybrid, mixed methods
Introduction
which are commonly identified with different names including administrators, professional (services) staff,
Universities, as large businesses in their own right,
or academic-related staff. In this paper, I use the term
are required to have effective academic and business
professional staff to encompass the wide range of
management to ensure successful teaching, research
activities these staff undertake ranging from, for example
and business-related outcomes. With massification and
accountants, registrars, human resource professionals, and
increased regulation there are considerable numbers
librarians. In 2014/15 these staff numbered 95,870 or 23.7
of non-academic staff working in Australian and UK
per cent of the total staff population in the UK (Higher
universities. For example, in Australia in 2015 there were
Education Statistics Agency, 2016; there is no number for
65,739 non-academic staff or 55.4 per cent of the total
this cohort of staff from Australia).These staff are typically
population; in the UK the figure for 2014/15 was 205,500
at least graduates (or are required to hold equivalent
or 51 per cent of the total population (Department of
qualifications or have equivalent experience, for example
Education and Training, 2016; Higher Education Statistics
accounting or human resource qualifications) who hold
Agency (HESA), 2016).
positions of varying authority and responsibility in their
According to the HESA in the UK, non-academic staff
universities. However, limited empirical research has been
include ‘managerial, professional and technical’ staff
carried out on the careers of these staff as it is suggested
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
87
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
they are ‘unseen and unsung’ (Eveline, 2004, p. 138).
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Literature review
This is a significant oversight, as research suggests that staff who are engaged, are satisfied with their job, and
The traditional organisational career was arguably
embedded in their organisation are more committed to
the major form of employment until the early to mid-
their organisation and potentially more productive, with
1990s with employers (both private and public sectors)
the positive effect of reduced staff turnover (Martin &
providing long-term employment and guaranteed benefits
Roodt, 2008; Mitchell et al., 2001).The literature that does
in return for high-commitment and high-productivity.
exist suggests that there are a number of antecedents that
Extensive economic changes in the 1970s and 1980s led to
contribute to their affective organisational commitment
organisations downsizing and de-layering to reduce costs,
including
opportunities,
with many shifting from a vertical to a more horizontal
learning and skills development and utilisation, and the
organisational design, with the perceived need to develop
work itself (Meyer et al., 2002).
generalists, and not just specialists, in order to respond to
remuneration,
promotion
A report by the Leadership Foundation for Higher
instability and change (Kanter, 1977, p. 325; Lent & Brown,
Education in the UK (LFHE, 2010, p. 6) on a study of
2006; Peiperl & Baruch, 1997). It has been argued that from
12,000 higher education staff, found that professional staff
the 1980s organisational design changed from the modern
were attracted to the sector by the ‘opportunity to use
to the postmodern, which then needed to be reflected
skills/experience’, ‘a friendly work environment’, ‘career
in new career models and major new conceptual models
security’ and ‘salary’; senior staff also placed emphasis
were developed based on constructivist approaches to
on sector values. Once recruited, they were committed
career theory. That individuals constructed their own
to staying within their organisation and agreed to a ‘high’
social realities was seen as the most important aspect of
extent that higher education offered a worthwhile career.
understanding people’s decision-making processes and
They reported that their current salary could induce them
career stories (Nichols, 2007, p. 61; Sharf, 2013, p. 15).Two
to leave, as could an opportunity to develop their career. In
new conceptual models were developed to understand
Australia, a report published in 2012 (Strachan et al., 2012)
contemporary careers: protean and boundaryless.
which surveyed 32,983 general staff (which includes clerical and technical staff) in 19 universities, showed that
The protean career model
75 per cent of respondents ‘strongly or somewhat agreed’
The protean career is both an attitude, and a process,
that they were satisfied with their job. However, 42 per
which the individual, and not the organisation, actively
cent said there was a 5-50% chance that they would leave
manages. A person’s career consists of all of their
their job voluntarily in the next 12 months; 63 per cent
varied experiences including education and training,
were satisfied with career opportunities at either their
work history, changes in positions and sectors etc. The
own university or in the sector and 54 per cent said
protean career focuses on intrinsic success resulting
that within the next five years they would like to be in a
from individual decisions and the meanings given to
higher-level role.
the work rather than extrinsic organisational career
This paper explores career theory applied to
achievements such as financial and hierarchical rewards
professional staff in Australian and UK universities through
(Arthur & Rousseau, 1996; Hall, 2004; Peiperl & Baruch,
the use of a multi method survey instrument. Baruch
1997). It centres on values-driven attitudes to employees’
(2014) and Briscoe et al. (2006) highlighted the need to
own careers rather than organisational requirements, and
develop applicable measures of the contemporary career
individuals showing high levels of self-directed vocational
and highlighted the importance of validation studies.
behaviour. The protean career also involves mobility,
Although Baruch’s (2014) work was critical of Briscoe
a whole-life perspective, developmental progression,
et al. (2006) 14-item measure that split protean career
continuous self-directed learning, autonomy, flexibility,
attitudes into two factors – self-directed and values-driven
and self-fulfilment (Briscoe & Hall, 2006). Therefore, the
– he did note that the items captured the nature of the
first two hypotheses for the present study would be as
protean career attitude. It is critical to test for evidence of
follows:
internal reliability and validity of constructs and this paper
H1 Professional staff will show a self-directed career management attitude
describes the testing of Briscoe et al. (2006) two-factor protean and boundaryless (explained below) constructs through a pilot study, before embarking on a larger study,
H2 Professional staff will show a values-driven attitude to their career
on university professional staff in Australia and the UK.
88
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
The boundaryless career model
and boundaryless careers intersect, but that some
The original theory of the boundaryless career viewed
individuals enact hybrid careers, which contain elements
individuals as free agents – not bounded by one
of traditional and contemporary careers (Sullivan &
organisational career – but moving easily between
Baruch, 2009). For example, Granrose and Baccili (2006)
organisations as well as careers (Arthur & Rousseau, 1996,
found that the majority of employees valued job security
p. 3-20) across varying industries, not all reliant on the
and upward mobility (traditional) but also training
traditional organisational employment contract. However,
relevant both internally and externally (boundaryless)
this original definition did not take account of whether
to the organisation and an open, trusting and mutually
these moves were voluntary or not, vertical or lateral, the
respectful work environment (protean). Previous research
duration, or if they were organisation- or self-directed
has shown that professional staff value job security and
(Sullivan & Baruch, 2009). More recently boundaryless
promotion opportunities (LFHE, 2010; Strachan et al.,
careers have been seen as dualistic, consisting of both
2012) so this leads to the final hypothesis:
psychological and geographical mobility (Arthur et
H5 Professional staff will show hybrid career attitudes
al., 2005; Segers et al., 2008; Sullivan & Baruch, 2009). Geographic mobility, most easily understood, has been
Method
the most researched factor but has resulted in contested outcomes, due in part to not taking the above duality
The study utilised a cross-sectional survey design to collect
into consideration. Psychological mobility, which has
quantitative and qualitative data via an online survey in
been defined as ‘the perception of the capacity to make
May 2015. For this pilot study a convenience sample was
transitions’ (Sullivan & Arthur, 2006, p. 21) has been
used to gather a suitable number of responses quickly
under-researched. Employees will vary in their attitude to
which could be achieved by exploiting the author’s
working outside of their own organisation, which does
LinkedIn connections (220). LinkedIn is a social media-
not necessarily correlate with an intention to leave their
networking site that allows colleagues to connect to each
current role to work for another organisation.
other in relation to work and professional interests; it
Boundaryless individuals are primarily motivated
was launched in 2003 and now has 300 million members
by intrinsic success but also by hierarchical success –
worldwide (LinkedIn, 2015). It is widely used in higher
albeit with more than one employer. Characteristics
education with most universities in Australia and the
of this career type are: mobility, flexibility, the need for
UK having a presence as well as the Australian and UK
meaningful work, skill utilisation, work-life balance
professional bodies for professional staff – the Association
and fulfilling relationships across organisations, and at
of Tertiary Education Managers and Association of
the same time not giving importance to organisational
University Administrators, respectively. Little research
promotions and career paths (Briscoe et al., 2006; Forrier
has been done on the use of LinkedIn as a sampling
et al., 2005). It assumes that an individual’s career would
design, although one study did highlight that of all the
be comprised of hierarchical and lateral moves, plateauing,
social media platforms used (Facebook, Twitter, blog) and
periods outside of the labour market and career changes;
traditional media, LinkedIn had the lowest participant
they therefore require external marketability.This leads to
recruitment rate (Middleton et al., 2014).
the next two hypotheses:
As this was a pilot study, a convenience sample was
H3 Professional staff will show a psychologically mobile attitude
appropriate as data analysis would be used to test the
H4 Professional staff will show a geographic mobile attitude
survey items (de Vaus, 2002, p. 90; Zikmund et al., 2003, p.
reliability, internal consistency and construct validity of the 305-308, 396) and to explore the data responses, therefore 30 or more responses was considered adequate. Of these
Hybrid theory
LinkedIn connections, not all would be appropriate as the
The two career theories outlined above have often been
population – or the participant identity – was specific,
used interchangeably, due to the cross-over in identifiable
that of professional staff in Australia (Higher Education
factors, and the fact that the protean career attitude could
Worker level 7 and above; Fair Work Ombudsman, 2010)
of course result in multiple organisational contracts;
and the UK (salary spinal point 30 and above; University
additionally a person with a boundaryless attitude is
and College Union, 2001).
also more likely to act in a protean fashion (Briscoe &
A new multi method survey instrument was constructed
Hall, 2006). Not only have studies shown that protean
consisting of items measuring demographics such as age,
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
89
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 1: The demographic characteristics of the participants (n=31) Australia Gender – Female Gender – Male Ethnicity Median age range Highest educational level
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 2: The employment characteristics of participants (n=31)
UK
Australia
10
7
Contract – permanent
9
5
Contract – fixed term
White/Caucasian White/ n=17 Caucasian =12 50-59
S
40-49
Professional qualification n=1 PhD n=2
PhD n=1
High school graduate n=3
Masters n=8
Masters n=6
Graduate n=3
UK 13
12
6
0
Full time
16
11
Part time
3 (all female)
1 (female)
Median salary range (n=17)
$105,000+
£50,00059,0001
Employed in current position
<5 years n=9
<5 years n=11
5-10 years n=6
10+ years n=1
10+ years n=4
Graduate n=7
Employed in current university
<5 years n=9
<5 years n=3
5-10 years n=6 5-10 years n=4 gender, educational attainment, and ethnicity, and items relating to work environment such as salary, number of promotions, and employment terms. To ascertain the perceptions of professional staff of their careers,previously
Intention to leave within 12 months
validated questions were used. Firstly, questions relating
The next section included items from a questionnaire by Raeder et al. (2009) to test employees’ needs from the organisation, based on psychological contract measures. The final career question was a free text box asking participants to relate their ‘career story’. The free text
10+ years n=5
Yes n=5
Yes n=1
No n=13
No n=11
1 invalid response
to aspects of protean and boundaryless careers, using a 5-point ratings scale were included (Briscoe et al., 2006).
10+ years n=4
Are you considering applying for promotion or a higher graded job in the next 3 years
Yes n=10
Yes n=8
No n=9
No n=4
1 Roughly equivalent
question was used to supplement the closed questions, to
0.78) or values-driven attitudes, although question 13 (I
provide an area of exploration into this subject area and
navigate my own career based upon my personal priorities
to triangulate the quantitative data (Creswell and Plano
as opposed to my university’s priorities) was removed due
Clark, 2011, p. 71).There were 34 responses; three of these
to cross-loading to self-directed (α = 0.76). CFA was carried
were partial and were excluded from the analysis. There
out on the boundaryless mindset components, which
were then 31 full responses with 19 participants from
confirmed that the items loaded onto psychological (α =
Australia and 12 participants from the UK.
0.90) or physical mobility preference (α = 0.81).
The quantitative survey data were analysed using SPSS v.22 and the qualitative data were analysed through
Demographic and employment data
manual coding, first using a number of a priori codes
The demographic and employment characteristics of the
informed by the literature followed by emergent codes
participants are shown in Tables 1 and 2, respectively. It
derived from the respondents’ stories (Barbour, 2008).
can be seen that the samples are skewed towards the older median age range, due, one would infer, to the
Results Instrument analysis
LinkedIn connections of the researcher. The participants are mainly white/Caucasian, and just over 50 per cent were women (Table 1).
Confirmatory factor analysis (CFA) was carried out on
Table 2 shows key employment data for the participants.
the protean career items, which agreed with the original
Thirty-two per cent of the participants in Australia were
analysis that the questionnaire items had internal reliability
on fixed term contracts compared with 100 per cent of
and clearly belonged to either of the two factors: self-
the UK staff being on permanent contracts. The majority
directed career management (Cronbach’s alpha (α) =
of staff in both countries were in full-time employment
90
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Table 3: Descriptive statistics for the composite variables self-directed, values-driven, psychologically mobile and geographic mobile career attitudes (n=31). Selfdirected Mean
4.15
Valuesdriven 3.81
Psychologically mobile 4.24
Geographic mobile 3.65
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
promotion. However, they also value job security, which has been shown to enhance career-enhancing strategies (Nabi, 2003), values-driven work, and challenging work. Self-efficacy: H1 (self-directed) career attitude
This is an important aspect of contemporary careers with both protean and boundaryless theories having self-
Std. Deviation
0.55
0.60
0.57
0.74
efficacy at their root. Proactive individuals approach their
Skewness
-0.46
-0.52
-0.28
-0.97
job to increase the likelihood of high job performance and
Std. Error of Skewness
0.43
0.43
0.42
0.42
engage in career enhancing activities (Nabi, 2003). Seibert
Kurtosis
0.74
-0.14
-0.80
1.85
proactive personalities and salary, number of promotions
Std. Error of Kurtosis
0.83
0.83
0.82
0.82
Minimum
2.60
2.33
3.00
1.40
Maximum
5.00
4.67
5.00
5.00
et al. (1999) showed a modest correlation between and career satisfaction. Eby et al. (2003) showed that proactive personality, openness to experience and personal insight were all significantly related to perceived career success and marketability. The data show that professional staff strongly related to statements concerning self-directed attitudes (µ=4.15),
(specified as greater than 30 hours per week) and towards the top end of the salary scale, indicating middle to senior management positions. For example, 11 of the 17 respondents from Australia indicated their salary was above $105,000 and nine of the 12 UK respondents indicated their salary was above £50,000. Staff in Australia reported that they had been employed both in their current university and in their current role for similar timeframes; whilst in the UK the participants had
for example: I expect myself to take responsibility for my career and in identifying skills development (Female, 40-49, UK) …this [advice from a senior manager] prompted me to take control of my career… (Male 40-49, UK) My career choices and directions have been mine (Male 50-59, Australia)
seemingly moved around within their universities more. Most staff had no intention to leave their jobs in the next
Values-driven career attitude: H2 (values-driven)
12 months although the majority did intend to apply for
career attitude
promotion within three years.Table 4 also shows that the
A career driven by personal values rather than
majority of staff in both countries deem organisational
organisational rewards is another key aspect of protean
loyalty, job security, opportunities for promotion, and
careers (Hall, 2004). The fact that these staff work in
opportunities for a career important.
universities suggests that they value work that has societal
Table 3 provides the means, standard deviations,
impact consistent with staff working in, for example the
skewness, and kurtosis data for the self-directed, values-
public sector (Sargent & Domberger, 2007). Professional
driven, psychologically and geographic mobile career
staff show values-driven (µ=3.81) career attitudes:
attitudes. A Shapior-Wilk test for normality showed that the data come from a normal distribution.
Career attitudes Research has shown that there are a number of
I am not prepared to sacrifice that [loyalty, integrity, making a difference] to be bored or frustrated at work, and I would still seek to leave if my values or my need to be challenged at [sic] not being met (Male 40-49, Australia)
organisational and individual characteristics that increase the likelihood of career success as defined by promotions
Mobility: H3 (psychologically mobile) and H4 (geo-
– self-efficacy, job rotation, and learning agility (Briscoe
graphically mobile) boundaryless career attitudes
& Hall, 2006; Çakmak-Otluoğlu, 2012; Dries, et al., 2012;
Career development opportunities within organisations
Karaevli & Tim 2006). The results from this study align
can include job placements, secondments or rotations
with some of these findings, as it shows that professional
to provide employees with varied work experiences.
staff exhibit self-efficacy, and prioritise job rotation
The argument is that people who spend most of their
and learning opportunities, career development and
career in one job, organisation or even sector have
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
91
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
limited knowledge and sets of competencies. Having a variety of experiences is necessary for employees to be able to extract general principles and transfer these to new situations (Dries et al., 2012). Karaevli and Tim
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Table 4: Perceived requirements from the employing university Requirements from university
Percentage of staff that ‘agree’ and ‘strongly agree’ Australia
(2006) argued that managers’ variety of career experience
UK
of functional areas plus a breadth of institutional
Loyalty
58
75
context understanding would be positively associated
Job security
63
83
A career
74
83
Opportunities for promotion
89
92
with promotion, salary and skill acquisition. They also suggested that getting a ‘deep’ understanding of an area is important so employees internalise the experiences, but that rotation after a few years avoided a person becoming too narrow in scope.
productivity and loyalty in its employees. As organisations
Professional staff related with the psychologically
have changed from a traditional to a contemporary
mobile boundaryless mindset (µ=4.24), which points to
design and the concomitant change to employment
H3 being supported. However, they showed a less positive
contracts and individuals’ expectations, one would
attitude towards a geographically mobile attitude, as this
postulate that employers and employees had embraced
factor showed the lowest mean score (µ=3.65) of all
this contemporary view of the workplace. However, Dries
factors, and with a higher standard deviation (SD=0.74)
and Pepermans (2007) showed that both employees and
showing a larger range of opinions. However, Table 2
human resource representatives had traditional views of
shows that many of the respondents moved around
careers i.e. they expected staff to progress hierarchically,
their own university in order to obtain new learning
and Walton and Mallon (2004) showed that aspects of
opportunities and/or promotions:
both traditional (e.g. advancement) and contemporary
I am now on secondment in a professional service department which I wanted to undertake to gain new insights, perspectives and see how other departments worked (Male 40-49, UK)
careers (e.g. enjoyment) were used in individual sense-
I have worked in the tertiary sector for more than 25 years across 3 different universities. I never stay in one position for more than 3 to 4 years before moving on (White female 50-59, Australia)
and experiences that develop a series of end-state skills.
I am hoping for a change in role if not promotion to keep me learning and motivated (Female 40-49, UK)
found that learning-agility ratings were unrelated to who
I very much motivated about learning new areas, taking on challenges and responsibilities (Female 30-39, Australia)
learning agility ratings performed better once promoted.
…looking for things that interest me and seeking out new challenges when my current role/organisation has ceased to provide them (Male 50-59, Australia)
opportunities. However, there is some difference between
This may have been due to a lack of clarity between
with the requirements of loyalty, job security, and an
psychologically
mobile
and
geographically
making of the participants’ careers. Career success as viewed as promotions to more senior roles, could be viewed as a journey undertaking demanding transitions Spreitzer, et al. (1997) found that end-state competency plus learning-orientated dimensions predicted executive potential. However, Eichinger and Lombardo (2004) received a promotion but that those employees with high Table 4 shows that professional staff in both countries value job security, an organisational career, and promotion the respondents from Australia and the UK, with those from Australia generally showing a weaker agreement
mobile
organisational career. This difference could be due to the
attitudes as geographic mobility would include moving
more senior staff that responded. In Australia above Level
from one job to another within the university as well
10 on the HEW classification (Fair Work Ombudsman,
as moving to a new university. This lead to H4 being
2010), staff are usually employed on fixed term contracts
provisionally supported.
(FTC) for three or five years (although they may continue to hold permanency at the lower level if promoted within
Job security and promotion: H5: Hybrid career
their own institution). This is a key difference compared
attitude
with senior staff in the UK who would be permanently
The traditional career perspective had at its most
employed regardless of grade. In Australia an argument
fundamental a need for job security and career pathways
for the FTC approach is that staff can have a higher
provided by the organisation, to ensure high job
salary than on the HEW agreement, which is negotiated
92
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
at institutional level. In the UK staff above salary point
and/or sampling error (Nunnally & Bernstein, 1994, p.
51 (University and College Union (UCU), 2001) have
133). Integrating the qualitative data from the participants’
different pay scales than the UCU agreed national salary
career stories does go some way further to validating the
scales, which are institution specific, allowing for a greater
internal reliability of the questionnaire (Creswell & Plano
degree of flexibility. Indeed, some senior staff, especially in
Clark 2011, p. 62). The data from the pilot survey provide
professional areas such as finance and marketing, where
evidence, for the next stage of the research, that the scales
universities often employ from private or public sectors,
are reliable to test the true nature of the protean and
salary often reflects external salary scales.
boundaryless career attitudes.
The qualitative data support the value that respondents
This study also advances our understanding of the
put on the requirements, indicating that, overall,
attitudes of professional staff within universities in
professional staff value aspects of both contemporary and
Australia and the UK to their careers and their expectations
traditional careers and, therefore that H5 is supported:
from their employers.This study showed that self-directed
My stage in life is such that I would very much prefer employment stability as my two children move through secondary education (Male 40-49, Australia)
and values-driven aspects of the protean career attitudes
I expect my university to value my contribution and to provide opportunities for development and promotion (Female 40-49, UK)
contrast to Baruch’s (2014) study that did not confirm
Career progression opportunities are similarly limited in this space and I have found that moving institutions is the only effective way to progress (Male 30-39, Australia)
were significantly correlated (r=0.450, p=<0.05) which agreed with Briscoe et al. (2006) results. This is in the two-factor model of the protean construct. The psychologically and geographically mobile boundaryless mindsets were not significantly correlated, which also agreed with Briscoe et al. (2006) results. This supports a number of previous studies that suggested that employees might be psychologically, but not geographically mobile.
Career progression depends on both the organisational
Data that highlights labour turnover statistics show
environment in terms of learning opportunities provided
that turnover has not increased (Inkson et al., 2012).
as well as an individual’s characteristics in terms of their
The self-directed protean career attitude also showed
own learning behaviour (Van der Sluis & Poell, 2003).
significant correlation to the geographically mobile
Professional staff showed that they valued learning
boundaryless mindset (r=0.496, p=<0.01). Professional
opportunities and as mentioned above this in part
staff show a strong affiliation for being psychologically
provides higher income and job performance, due to the
mobile but not for geographic mobility. It may be that
increase in skills and knowledge of the organisation:
for these staff they conceptually and physically cross
Mutual respect, learning and opportunity to contribute to the big picture motivates me (Female 30-39, Australia)
intra-organisational boundaries, which is evidenced by
I am motivated mainly by the opportunity to learn and to make a difference (Male 40-49, UK)
to position themselves better to gain a promotion, they
some of the quantitative and qualitative data. That is, in order to both continue feeling fulfilled in their work, and move between roles and/or projects to gain a breadth of experience. This may have also become more important
Independent-samples t-tests were run for all hypotheses
with the opening of the labour market in universities as
that showed there was no significant difference between
part of the introduction of new managerialism (Nickson,
respondents from Australia or the UK.
2014). There is evidence from these results to suggest that these staff moderate their geographic mobility as
Discussion
the majority have no intention to leave their employer, perhaps due to the need for job security in an increasingly
The results of this pilot study into the reliability of the
unsecure and competitive labour market.
protean and boundaryless questionnaire scales indicate a
Contemporary career theory argues that employees
good level of internal reliability, in line with Nunnally and
do not value an organisational type career and, as part
Bernstein’s (1994, p. 252) recommendation that the alpha
of taking responsibility for their own careers, are not
coefficients are over the 0.70 threshold. Due to the small
bound to one organisation, they are highly mobile and
scale of the study,however,these results should be read with
value work-life balance (Briscoe & Hall, 2006; Forrier et
caution as the small number of participants mean that the
al., 2005). Conversely, previous research has indicated that
results can be significantly affected by data transformations
organisational careers and aspects of contemporary careers
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
93
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Tra d it io n a l c a re e r a t t it u d e Em p lo y e r- d e p e n d e n t , jo b s e c u rit y , h ie ra rc h ic a l a d v a n c e m e n t , lo w m o b ilit y, s t at us , f rin g e b e n e f it s , o rg a n is a t io n a l c o m m it m e n t , lo w c a re e r s e lf-e ffic a c y
Bo u n d a ry le s s c a re e r a t t it u d e Em p lo ye r-ind e p e nd e n t , m a rke t a b ilit y, c a re e r s e lf - e f f ic a c y , s kill u t ilis a t io n , in t e ro rg a nis a t io na l re lat io ns h ip s , fle xib ilit y, wo rk-life b ala nc e , m e a n in g f u l w o rk, o rg a n is a t io n a l p o s it io n , h ig h m o b ilit y , s t a t u s
Hy b rid c a re e r a t t it u d e Pro t e a n c a re e r a t t it u d e Em p lo ye r ind e p e nd e nt , jo b s a t is fa c t io n, c a re e r s e lf - e f f ic a c y , wo rk-life b ala nc e , v a lu e m a t c h , d e ve lo p m e nt a l p ro g re s s io n, le a rn in g o p p o rt u n it ie s , p ro fe s s io na l c o m m it m e nt , m e a n in g f u l w o rk, fre e d o m , g ro w t h
Figure 1: The hybrid career attitude of professional staff (bold text shows attitudes shown by professional staff)
are complementary (Baruch, 2006; Dries & Pepermans,
an organisational career, but they also show aspects of
2007; Walton & Mallon, 2004) or that individuals take
protean and boundaryless career management attitudes
hybrid approaches to their careers (Sullivan & Baruch,
including learning opportunities, skills utilisation, and
2009). For example, Walton and Mallon (2004) showed
challenging work – that is they show hybrid career
that aspects of both traditional (e.g. advancement) and
attitudes (Fig. 1).
contemporary careers (e.g. enjoyment) were used in
It could be argued that this hybrid approach to career
individual sense-making of employees’ careers. Research
management has resulted from the rapid change in
by Çakmak-Otluoğlu (2012) showed that having a
universities in both countries towards new managerialism
boundaryless mindset could co-exist with organisational
(Nickson, 2014) which could result in changes to the
commitment and did not necessarily equate with mobility
careers of those within universities (Clarke, 2012; Inkson
and Baruch (2014) noted that protean and traditional
et al., 2012). Professional staff may have adopted self-
career attitudes were not always opposing.These previous
directed approaches to career management to cope with
studies support a more nuanced approach to career theory
these new realities, organisational restructures, short-
and this current research suggests that professional staff
term contracts, and external labour market competition
value aspects of traditional organisational careers such
for example, but still require a work environment that is
as loyalty, job security, opportunities for promotion and
intrinsically motivating.
94
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Management, 25(19), 1–22. doi:10.1080/09585192.2014.896389.
Implications The implications of this validated scale applied to professional staff in universities is significant for future research, as contemporary career theories have not been tested on professional staff previously; this scale offers a reliable, concise and practical measure to test employee attitudes. Further research needs to take place to test these early results to fully understand the interplay between protean, boundaryless and traditional career attitudes in this sector and employee cohort. This research highlights a need for universities’ human resource departments to spend further time investigating the attitudes of their professional staff, as there is a clear tension at work in this cohort of staff in terms of their career needs. On the one hand you have professional staff with protean and boundaryless career attitudes: requiring responsibility in the work task, meaningful work, learning opportunities, skills utilisation, and ongoing challenging work assignments. These needs may lead to mobility as employees move around their organisation to continue to feel challenged and motivated. On the other hand, they show the traditional career requirements of loyalty, job security, promotion opportunities and an organisational career. Universities can use this scale to evaluate their employees’ career orientations, which have implications for job design, professional development and career planning. Michelle Gander is currently a PhD student at Murdoch University, Perth, Australia where she also tutors on research methods for business, and foundations of management units. Previously, she worked as a professional staff member as Director of the University Secretary’s/COOs office at the Open University in the UK.
Briscoe, J. P., & Hall, D. T. (2006). The interplay of boundaryless and protean careers: Combinations and implications. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 69, 4–18. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2005.09.002. Briscoe, J. P., Hall, D. T., & Frautschy DeMuth, R. L. (2006). Protean and boundaryless careers: An empirical exploration. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 69(1), 30–47. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2005.09.003. Çakmak-Otluoğlu, K. Ö. (2012). Protean and boundaryless career attitudes and organizational commitment: The effects of perceived supervisor support. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 80(3), 638–646. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2012.03.001. Clarke, M. (2012). The organizational career: Not dead but in need of redefinition. The International Journal of Human Resource Management, 24(4), 1–20. doi:10.1080/09585192.2012.697475. Creswell, J. W., & Plano Clark, V. L. (2011). Designing and Conducting Mixed Methods Research. Thousand Oaks: Sage Publications. Dries, N., & Pepermans, R. (2007). “Real” high-potential careers. Personnel Review, 37(1), 85–108. doi:10.1108/00483480810839987. Dries, N., Vantilborgh, T., & Perpermans, R. (2012). The role of learning agility and career variety in the identification and development of high potential employees. Personnel Review, 41(3), 340–358. Eby, L. T., Butts, M., & Lockwood, A. (2003). Predictors of success in the era of the boundaryless career. Journal of Organizational Behavior, 24(6), 689–708. doi:10.1002/job.214. Eichinger, R. W., & Lombardo, M. M. (2004). Learning Agility as a Prime Indicator of Potential. Human Resource Planning, 27(4), 12–15. Eveline, J. (2004). Ivory Basement Leadership: power and invisibility in the changing university. Crawley: University of Western Australia Press. Fair Work Ombudsman (2010). Pay guide – higher education industry – general staff – award 2010. Retrieved from www.fairwork.gov.au. Forrier, A., Sels, L., & Verbruggen, M. (2005). Career Counseling in the New Career Era: A Study about the Influence of Career Types, Career Satisfaction and Career Management on the Need for Career Counseling. SSRN Journal, 1, 37. doi:10.2139/ssrn.878279. Hall, D. T. (2004). The protean career: A quarter-century journey. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 65(1), 1–13. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2003.10.006. Inkson, K., Gunz, H., Ganesh, S., & Roper, J. (2012). Boundaryless Careers: Bringing Back Boundaries. Organization Studies, 33(3), 323–340. doi:10.1177/0170840611435600.
Contact: m.gander@murdoch.edu.au
Kanter, R. M. (1977). Men and women of the corporation. New York: Basic Books.
References
Karaevli, A., & Tim, D. T. (2006). How career variety promotes the adaptability of managers: A theoretical model. Journal of Vocational Behaviour, 69(3), 359–373. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2006.05.009.
Arthur, M. B., Khapova, S. N., & Wilderom, C. P. M. (2005). Career success in a boundaryless career world. Journal of Organizational Behavior, 26(2), 177–202. doi:10.1002/job.290. Arthur, M. B., & Rousseau, D. M. (1996). Introduction: The Boundaryless Career as a New Employment Principle. In M. B. Arthur & D. M. Rousseau (Eds.), The Boundaryless Career: A New Employment Principle for a New Organizational Era (p. 394). New York: Oxford University Press. Barbour, R. (2008). Introducing qualitative research: a student guide to the craft of doing qualitative research. London: Sage Publications. Baruch, Y. (2006). Career development in organizations and beyond: Balancing traditional and contemporary viewpoints. Human Resource Management Review, 16, 125–138. doi:10.1016/j.hrmr.2006.03.002. Baruch, Y. (2014). The development and validation of a measure for protean career orientation. The International Journal of Human Resource vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Lent, R. W., & Brown, S. D. (2006). Integrating person and situation perspectives on work satisfaction: A social-cognitive view. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 69(2), 236–247. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2006.02.006. LFHE. (2010). Insight into Career Motivation in Higher Education: Analysis of Aggregated Results from 2009 Benchmarking Study. London. LinkedIn (2015) About us. Retrieved from www.linkedin.com/about-us?trk=hpabout. Martin, A., & Roodt, G. (2008). Perceptions of organisational commitment, job satisfaction and turnover intentions in a post-merger South African tertiary institution. SA Journal of Industrial Psychology, 34(1), 23–31. Meyer, J. P., Stanley, D. J., Herscovitch, L., & Topolnytsky, L. (2002). Affective, Continuance, and Normative Commitment to the Organization: A Meta-analysis of Antecedents, Correlates, and Consequences. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 61(1), 20–52. doi:10.1006/jvbe.2001.1842.
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
95
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Middleton, A., Bragin, E., & Parker, M. (2014). Finding people who will tell you their thoughts on genomics – recruitment strategies for social sciences research. Journal of Community Genetics, 5(4), 291–302. doi:10.1007/s12687-0140184-2. Mitchell, T. R., Holtom, B. C., Lee, T. W., Sablynski, C. J., & Erez, M. (2001). Why People Stay: Using Job Embeddedness To Predict Voluntary Turnover. Academy of Management Journal, 44(6), 1102–1121. doi:10.2307/3069391. Musselin, C. (2013). Redefinition of the relationships between academics and their university. Higher Education, 65(1), 25–37. doi:10.1007/s10734-0129579-3. Nabi, G. R. (2003). Situational characteristics and subjective career success: the mediating role of career-enhancing strategies. International Journal of Manpower, 24(6), 653–671. Nichols, K. (2007). Decoding postmodernism for busy public managers: many public managers intuitively operate in postmodern ways, adapting to circumstances rather than relying on orthodox theories of organization, management, and culture. The Public Manager, 36(1), 60–62. Nickson, A. (2014). A qualitative case study exploring the nature of New Managerialism in UK higher education and its impact on individual academics’ experience of doing research. Journal of Research Administration, 45(1), 47–101. Nunnally, J. C., & Bernstein, I. H. (1994). Psychometric Theory (3rd ed.). New York: McGraw-Hill.
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Segers, J., Inceoglu, I., Vloeberghs, D., Bartram, D., & Henderickx, E. (2008). Protean and boundaryless careers: A study on potential motivators. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 73(2), 212–230. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2008.05.001. Seibert, S. E., Grant, J. M., & Kraimer, M. L. (1999). Proactive Personality and Career Success. Journal of Applied Psychology, 84(3), 416–427. Sharf, R. S. (2013). Advances in theories of career development. In W. B. Walsh, M. L. Savickas, & P. J. Hartung (Eds.), Handbook of Vocational Psychology: Theory, research, and practice (Fourth., p. 341). Hove: Routledge. Skromme Granrose, C., & Baccili, P. A. (2006). Do psychological contracts include boundaryless or protean careers? Career Development International, 11(2), 163–182. doi:10.1108/13620430610651903. Spreitzer, G. M., Mccall, M. W., & Mahoney, J. D. (1997). Early Identification of International Executive Potential. Journal of Applied Psychology, 82(1), 6–29. Strachan, G., Troup, C., David Peetz, D., Whitehouse, G., Broadbent, K., & Bailey, J. (2012). Work and Careers in Australian Universities: Report on Employee Survey. Nathan. Sullivan, S. E., & Arthur, M. B. (2006). The evolution of the boundaryless career concept: Examining physical and psychological mobility. Journal of Vocational Behavior, 69(1), 19–29. doi:10.1016/j.jvb.2005.09.001. Sullivan, S. E., & Baruch, Y. (2009). Advances in career theory and research: A critical review and agenda for future exploration. Journal of Management, 35(6), 1542–1571. doi:10.1177/0149206309350082.
Peiperl, M., & Baruch, Y. (1997). Back to square zero: The post-corporate career. Organizational Dynamics, 25(4).
University and College Union. (2001). Joint Negotiating Committee for Higher Education Staff Framework Agreement for the Modernisation of Pay. Retrieved from http://www.ucu.org.uk/index.cfm?articleid=2210.
Pick, D., Teo, S., & Yeung, M. (2012). Friend or foe? New managerialism and technical, administrative and clerical support staff in Australian universities. Higher Education Quarterly, 66(1), 3–23. doi:10.1111/j.14682273.2011.00500.x.
Van der Sluis, L. E. C., & Poell, R. F. (2003). The impact on career development of learning opportunities and learning behavior at work. Human Resource Development Quarterly, 14(2), 159–179. doi:10.1002/hrdq.1058.
Raeder, S., Wittekind, A., Inauen, A., & Grote, G. (2009). Testing a psychological contract measure in a Swiss employment context. Swiss Journal of Psychology, 68(4), 177–188. doi:10.1024/1421-0185.68.4.177. Sargent, L. D., & Domberger, S. R. (2007). Exploring the development of a protean career orientation: Values and image violations. Career Development International, 12(6), 545–564. doi:10.1108/13620430710822010
96
Walton, S., & Mallon, M. (2004). Redefining the boundaries? Making sense of career in contemporary New Zealand. Asia Pacific Journal of Human Resources, 42(1), 75–95. doi:10.1177/1038411104039470.76. Zikmund, W. G., Babin, B. J., Carr, J. C., & Griffin, M. (2003). Business Research Methods (8th ed.). Mason: South-Western Cengage Learning.
Careers of professional staff in Australian and UK universities Michelle Gander
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen University of Queensland
In this paper we review current practices for developing and promoting academic leadership in universities. We consider the forms of leadership that are appropriate for academic organisations, while exploring the types of leadership favoured by recruitment and promotion committees. Using the Australian higher education context as a case study, we critique the current situation as promoting a restricted form of leadership focused on technical leadership within an academic discipline, rather than the broader array of leadership skills necessary for effective academic leadership. We go on to consider a number of ways in which this broad range of leadership skills can be fostered and developed within academe. Keywords: Leadership, leadership development, mentoring, public service management, universities
Introduction
Yet perhaps a more fundamental and pervasive manifestation of this increased scrutiny has been the move
In the last four decades, the Australian higher education
to corporatised governance structures and management
system has undergone considerable change. Fuelled
approaches to administer the ‘business’ of academic
by a confluence of social, economic and demographic
institutions (Blackmore & Sachs, 2000; Deem & Brehony,
pressures, successive governments have introduced
2005; Gosling, Bolden & Petrov, 2009; Jones et al., 2012;
educational policies in Australia that have encouraged
Kligyte & Barrie, 2014). Universities are expected to be
greater participation rates in post-secondary education
models of efficiency and cost effectiveness, to be flexible
and training, including higher education. As more and
in their course offerings, and increasingly responsive to
more students attend universities, there has been an
student needs and expectations. The relatively recent
expectation of increased accountability to government
innovation and commercialisation zeitgeist–whereby
funders (Jones, 2011; Yielder & Codling, 2004), with
research value is defined in terms of its more immediate
a broad, but often ill-defined, dictum that universities
‘real-world’ outcomes–has served to reinforce this more
contribute to the economic and social goals of society
corporatised model of academic research and teaching
(see Fearn, 2010). Since universities receive public funds,
(e.g., Suresh, 2015). These changes have resulted in
their employees, including academic staff, are often
an epochal shift in the academic landscape that has
seen to be ‘public servants’ who must acquiesce to the
influenced the balance of teaching and research, and
expectations and reporting processes put in place by
even the type of research undertaken (Abbott et al.,
government (Jones, 2011). The litany of quantitative
2010). Further, the insistence upon the relevance of
performance metrics is one visible sign of these increased
universities for the economic flourishing of society may
expectations of accountability in academe (see for
have, somewhat ironically, resulted in the pursuit of
instance Van Noorden, 2010).
increasingly ‘ivory tower’ behaviours (Jones, 2011).
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
97
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Some commentators have also noted that these
departments within the same organisation (Kligyte &
developments have resulted in a crisis of leadership and
Barrie, 2014; Langland, 2012). For instance, Bolden et al.
identity in the university sector (Bryman, 2007; Drew,
(2015) highlight some of the problems with assuming
2006; Jones et al., 2012; Jones, 2011; Kligyte & Barrie,
a corporate leadership model in academic institutions,
2014; Lumby, 2012;Winter, 2009;Yielder & Codling, 2004).
observing that ‘the move towards a more corporate
Although universities undoubtedly share many features
approach is associated with an intensification of formal
with corporations–such as the requirements for good
management processes… and the potential fragmentation
governance, strategy formulation and execution–the
and erosion of informal academic and self-leadership’.
corporate ideal of leadership has contested applicability
This then causes a loss of ‘a coherent sense of academic
to academe (Bolden et al., 2015; Kligyte & Barrie, 2014;
values, identity and purpose that, in turn, are key to the
Lumby, 2012). While academics value and desire an
production of high-quality academic work’ (p.11). Top-
enabling form of leadership, many currently believe that
down leadership, with connotations of ‘power-over’ and
they are constrained by overly bureaucratic administrators
inequality, is also problematic for academics who value
and managers who lack the necessary interpersonal and
academic independence above all else (Bolden et al.,
strategic analysis skills to lead their academic colleagues
2015).
(Ball, 2007; Drew et al., 2008; Lumby, 2012).
Despite such objections to the wholesale adoption
Within this changing landscape, we explore the forms
of the ‘corporate approach’ to leadership in academe,
of leadership that are appropriate to the particular
there is limited consensus on what constitutes effective
context of academia, and whether (and in what form)
‘academic leadership’. In universities, senior executives
leadership is considered by academic recruitment and
administer resources and determine policies, while
promotion committees. We discuss whether current
senior academics define the university’s intellectual
practices promote purely technical leadership within
authority (Jones, 2011; Karmel, 1990; Kligyte & Barrie,
an academic discipline, or take into consideration the
2014). Clearly, without intellectual authority universities
broader array of leadership skills necessary for effective
undermine their ‘brand’ and market position. However,
academic leadership (Bryman, 2007; Goffee & Jones, 2005;
most universities are large and complex organisations that
Walumbwa et al., 2008). Finally, we consider a number of
require professional managers to set direction, coordinate
ways in which a broad array of leadership skills can be
efforts, oversee day-to-day operations, and control
fostered and promoted within universities. In line with
finances. The challenge, therefore, is to work with both
current scholarship that critiques our ‘obsession… with
academic and non-academic staff to get the balance right
individual leaders’ (Bolden et al., 2015, p. 12. See also Day,
between the administration of resources on one hand,
2001; Day et al., 2014), we focus less upon ‘intrapersonal’
and the enhancement of intellectual authority through
leader development, and more upon the ‘interpersonal’
the promotion of scholarly pursuits on the other (Karmel,
enhancement of leadership capacity. Throughout our
1990; Kligyte & Barrie, 2014).
analysis we draw from our experience in Australian
To this end, there is evidence that shared or distributed
universities and focus on academic leadership more so
leadership may be an appropriate model for academic
than leadership of professional staff within universities.
institutions (Bolden et al., 2015; Jones, 2011), with administrative tasks delegated to non-faculty staff, while
Towards a definition of Academic Leadership
academic leaders, such as department heads and leaders in research and teaching streams, focus on advancing academic values and goals.This perspective of distributed
Empirical inquiry into organisational leadership has
leadership posits a ‘filtering out’ of bureaucratic demands
established that effective leadership results in positive
so that academics are better able to pursue teaching and
outcomes
alike,
research, while also developing the requisite skills to
including improved employee performance (Carter et al.,
enable strategic leadership and operational effectiveness
2013), organisational commitment (Hulpia et al., 2012),
(Drew et al., 2008). For instance, Bryman (2009) argues
job satisfaction (Gunnarsdóttir, 2014) and employee
that university leaders need to ‘create an environment or
retention (Burke et al., 2006; Caproni, 2012; Katzenbach
context for academics and others to fulfil their potential
& Smith, 2005). However, there is also recognition that
and interest in their work’ (p.66), noting the need for
what constitutes ‘effective’ leadership may vary in
leaders to ‘consult; to respect existing values; to take
different kinds of organisations, or even among different
actions in support of collegiality; to promote the interests
98
for
employees
and
organisations
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
of those for whom the leader is responsible; to be involved
The prevalence of this ‘blended’ model of leadership
in the life of the department/institution; to encourage
and management is emphasised by recent research,
autonomy; and not to allow the department/institution to
which suggests that, whether by choice or circumstance,
drift’ (p.68). Such leadership has more in common with
those who currently occupy formal university leadership
management by objective than management by control
roles tend to engage in institutional management roles
(Larson & Gray, 2011). This notion of leadership that is
rather than exercise broader forms of leadership (Lumby,
both formal and informal, and also dispersed (Ball, 2007,
2012; Kligyte & Barrie, 2014). As a result, many heads of
Bolden et al., 2015; Ladyshewsky & Flavell, 2011), has a
departments and other senior academics do not have
number of similarities to the distributed leadership in
sufficient time, resources, or authority to engage with and
primary and secondary schools described by Lumby
influence academic work (Bolden, Gosling & O’Brien,
(2012):
2012), and often find that they are ‘so busy complying with
‘If heroic top-down leadership is at one end of a theoretical spectrum and organised anarchy is at the other, distributed leadership sits in between. It acknowledges the presence and necessity for individual, hierarchical leadership by the few and also accounts for its inadequacy in both theory and practice to capture the multifaceted, simultaneously intentional and emergent phenomenon of organisational leadership by the many’ (p. 9).
bureaucratic and reporting procedures… (and) dealing
In a recent review, Denis et al. (2012) outlined a range
with being head of school outweigh the perceived rewards
of perspectives that address the notion of ‘leadership
and benefits of the position (Williams et al., 2010; Scott et
in the plural’, including those approaches that explore
al., 2008). Furthermore, ‘the presence of formal research
the spread of leadership across levels and over time.
leaders does not necessarily mean that the leadership of
Jones and colleagues (2012) outlined a framework for
academics in research will occur’ (Ball, 2007, p.74).Another
taking action under a distributed leadership approach
issue is that department headship is often rotated through
in universities, and Fraser and Harvey (2008) report
senior academic staff, and therefore not much time is
on a project designed to develop multi-level academic
devoted to gaining leadership skills that may only be used
leadership across the institution through a distributed
temporarily (Ladyshweksy & Flavell, 2011).
with complaints… that they have little time left to lead or to think and operate strategically’ (Scott et al., 2008, p. xiv). Confounding this issue, or perhaps caused by it, is the fact that leaders in the middle of the university hierarchy are sometimes reluctant leaders (Floyd, 2012; Jones, 2011; Ladyshewsky & Flavell, 2011). Indeed, there are indications that many academics think that the pressures associated
leadership and participatory action research model.
The current situation of ‘managing-not-leading’ brings
Bolden and colleagues (2015) also note that leadership
to the fore the questions of what academics expect or
is a ‘group quality… a set of functions which must be
desire from their leaders. In part, such expectations may
carried out by the group’ (p. 17). From this perspective,
relate to each individual’s perceptions of their identity and
distributed leadership is a way to connect the
intellectual authority as an academic. Generally, it seems
multifaceted roles required within a university to deliver
that academics ‘identify leadership in relation to values
teaching and research programs. However, despite its
and identity, not in the allocation of tasks’ (Bolden et al.,
apparent suitability to the sector, distributed or shared
2012, p. 14), which indicates that transformational and
leadership is not common in academic institutions
authentic theories of leadership may also be applicable to
(Lumby, 2012). Moreover, there is significant divergence
academic departments (Drew et al., 2008; Goffee & Jones,
between rhetoric and reality among higher education
2005; Pounder, 2001; Walumbwa et al., 2008). The notion
institutions that espouse a distributed leadership
of intellectual authority reinforces the idea that academics
approach (Gosling et al., 2009). Instead, universities
are typically highly individualistic and desire, or perhaps
tend to adopt a ‘blended’ view of university leadership,
require, academic freedom to function autonomously
within which it is difficult to distinguish between
(Karmel, 1990). There is also the problem that, again
leadership and management roles (Lumby, 2012). As a
due to the individualistic nature of many academics,
consequence, academic leaders appear to be primarily
‘leadership’ implies ‘followership’–the latter being a role
focused on organisational management, as reinforced
that many academics see as anathema (Bolden et al.,
via hierarchical (top-down) management structures. In
2015).This level of academic autonomy has been referred
other cases, academic leaders are required to manage
to as ‘self-leadership’ and defines not only an academic’s
‘up’ and ‘down’, leading some to comment that they feel
ability to determine their own objectives and how to
like they are in a ‘sandwich’ (Scott et al., 2008).
achieve them, but also their ability to influence junior
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
99
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
academics and their peers (Ball, 2007; Lumby, 2012). The
the perceived effectiveness of leaders (Lumby, 2012), or
concept of self-leadership is important as it implies self-
on the ways in which academic leadership differs from
insight, which is a prerequisite for understanding others
leadership in other organisations (Kligyte & Barrie, 2014;
and a foundation for the development of authentic
Scott et al., 2008). In our analysis below, we discuss the
leadership (Goffee & Jones, 2005; Katzenbach & Smith,
more applied considerations of whether recruitment and
2005).Therefore, ideally university leaders should balance
promotion practices select for leadership in its broadest
bureaucratic requirements with the need to create
sense and what forms of leadership development are best
a climate that encourages the intellectual authority
suited to academic institutions.
and self-leadership skills of their colleagues. From this transformational approach (Ball, 2007; Drew et al., 2008;
Promoting Academic Leadership
Floyd, 2012), leadership is attentive to allowing and respecting independence and enabling others to act,
Promotion in universities rewards academic staff for the
while modelling best practice in research and teaching
quality, quantity and impact of their work by advancing
(Bolden et al., 2015, Jones, 2011).
that person’s position (level) within the organisation.
A complication of increased scope and freedom is that
Given the diverse political, cultural and economic forces
academics may have their own personal objectives that
that influence university governance and policy globally,
may, or may not, relate to the objectives of the university.
it is perhaps not surprising that even within one country,
In situations where personal objectives conflict with the
such as Australia, distinctive and diverse promotion and
objectives of the university, the identity claims that arise
performance management systems have developed (Morris,
from the competing values of ‘traditional’ academics and
2011; Scott et al., 2008). Nevertheless, promotions are still
‘contemporary’ managerial academics, may give rise to
typically decided by a combination of staff and/or central
unproductive intergroup behaviour (Winter, 2009). For
committees based upon a written application, referee
instance, where department heads are seen as overly
reports, and interviews. Universities provide information
bureaucratic, many researchers create their own informal
and guidelines for both applicants and promotion
research networks, including people ‘both within and
committees that are intended to clarify expectations about
beyond their own institution’ (Bolden et al., 2015, p. 6).
performance without forcing inappropriate rigidity. The
In such situations, academics tend to become increasingly
interview with the promotion committee supplements
disaffected with university leadership, resulting in a feeling
the written application and provides an opportunity for
of being ‘disengaged and demotivated’ (Bolden et al.,
the applicant to present their case for promotion, answer
2015, p. 6). This loss of collegiality within universities has
questions from the committee and clarify any procedural
profound effects on morale and also strikes at the heart of
matters. Promotion to a leadership position, such as
academic culture (Kligyte & Barrie, 2014). If, as Kligyte and
full professor, head of department or head of program,
Barrie (2014) observe, collegiality is the ‘behavioural norm
requires evidence to support the applicant’s international
that…shapes the culture of the organisation’ (p.162), then
reputation in academic leadership in their discipline. In
the role of a leader is to foster a shared identity and sense
addition, an applicant must demonstrate a contribution
of collegiality, whether inter- or intra-departmental. This
to the governance and collegial life of the university, to
shared identity assists in maintaining the culture, values,
continuing education, and to research.
vision, and goals of the university’s ‘strategic vision’ (Jones,
Universities have a clear expectation that academics
2011, p. 281), while still allowing intellectual freedom and
will take on greater responsibilities throughout their
connection to individual disciplines (Ball, 2007).
tenure (Vardi & Quin, 2011), typically focusing on some
Therefore, for the purposes of this paper, academic
aspect of teaching, research, or service (Winchester et
leadership is defined as ‘the distributed practice of
al., 2006). Leadership in these academic domains may
carrying out the institution’s strategic vision while
be demonstrated to promotion committees in a range of
supporting the development of intellectual authority and
different ways. For instance, one person may demonstrate
a shared identity that fosters collegiality’. This definition
leadership through activities that have broad influence
of academic leadership can be thought of in contrast to
on practices, policies, programs and their profession;
‘management’, which is concerned with the efficient use
another may provide evidence of effective leadership,
of resources to plan (Jones 2011; Langland, 2012; Lumby
management and development of the staff who teach
2012). Previously, much of the research on academic
within their unit (Vardi & Quin, 2011). Recruitment and
leadership in the university environment is based upon
promotion decisions are also influenced by staff strengths
100
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
and requirements, as well as the overall objectives of
• Six of the eight give only limited advice on how best
the university. For instance, if an academic is fulfilling a
to evidence (soft) leadership skills such as mentoring
perceived gap in core expertise in a particular discipline;
colleagues, managing staff, or strategic management.
or if a particular teaching or research program is prioritised
Typically this advice is aimed at applicants already in
within the strategic plan of a university, then promotion
formal leadership roles and consists primarily of self-
and recruitment decisions may be influenced by these
reflection and/or references from peers.
strategic considerations. However, in practice universities
• All eight request examples of specific outcomes as
often have a strong bias towards leadership in discipline-
evidence of leadership skills, e.g., new programs,
specific research when making decisions about academic
curricula, policies, or procedures. However, a focus on
recruitment and promotion. The ‘publish or perish’
outcomes reveals little about what type of leadership, if
trope encapsulates this perceived bias towards research
any, was required to achieve these outcomes.
productivity in academic career progression (Hesli et al.,
• None explicitly measure leadership as a standard part
2012), with the amount of publications by an academic,
of the promotion procedure. The University of Western
relative to opportunity, considered critical to both
Australia’s ILS does have a suite of leadership measures,
recruitment and promotion outcomes
(Gardner
&
Blackstone, 2013). Whether or not research and other publications are a useful proxy
for
leadership
academic is
treated
but these are not part of the
While the accuracy with which these measures reflect the underlying quality or impact of the academic’s work is debatable, they clearly serve as poor surrogates for leadership in its broadest sense.
promotion procedure. From
this
current
situation
promotion reflect
survey, the appears
Peter
commonly
with to
Drucker’s
cited
quote,
as a separate and often
‘what’s measured improves.’
unexplored
Research productivity can
question
by
recruitment and promotion committees. This is despite
be measured via an academic’s number of publications,
the fact that leadership roles in universities require a broad
journal impact factors, number of citations, and their
range of knowledge and skills; for instance, knowledge
h-index. Likewise teaching effectiveness can be measured
about finance or academic policies, and interpersonal
with
skills such as communication and emotional intelligence
commendations (Vardi & Quin, 2011). While the accuracy
(Scott et al., 2008;Yielder & Codling, 2004).
with which these measures reflect the underlying quality
teaching
evaluations, teaching
awards, and
While promotion criteria are well studied, especially in
or impact of the academic’s work is debatable, they clearly
relation to gender equality (Hesli et al., 2012; Winchester
serve as poor surrogates for leadership in its broadest
et al., 2006) and the scholarship of teaching and learning
sense. For example, two academics with exactly the same
(Vardi & Quin, 2011), researchers have not directly
research and teaching outcomes may have achieved
examined how well recruitment and promotion criteria
these outcomes with very different levels of funding,
select for effective leadership, or what those criteria
resources, or collaborative leadership skills; and may differ
might look like. A review of the promotion policies and
significantly on leadership potential.
procedures for the Group of Eight (Go8), a coalition of
Problematically, guidelines and policies often provide
comprehensive and research intensive universities in
only a limited discussion of ‘leadership in’ or ‘leadership of’,
Australia, reveals the following observations:
and so the form of leadership required, and how it is best
• All eight specify leadership as a criterion for promotion,
evidenced, remain unclear to recruitment and promotion
either explicitly or as part of the research, teaching, and
committees. For example, the University of Queensland’s
service criteria. Leadership is most often discussed
‘Guidelines for confirmation and promotions committee
in relation to the service criteria in an academic’s
members’, does not contain any mention of leadership, or
discipline, community, or university.
any advice as to what leadership might mean, or how it
• Only one, the University of Western Australia, includes
should be demonstrated. One explanation for this might
a definition of leadership that highlights both hard
be that committee members know what leadership is and
and soft leadership skills. The definition is based on
how it can be appropriately evidenced. However, it seems
the Australian Public Service Commission’s Integrated
unlikely that all committee members would have the
Leadership System (ILS) (Australian Public Service
same experiences and opinions of leadership – especially
Commission, 2004)
given that even the literature on leadership does not
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
101
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
have a universally agreed definition of what constitutes
benefits of formal leadership training. For instance, the
leadership (Allio, 2005; Lumby, 2012). In addition,
University of Wollongong recently developed a formal
‘hard’ forms of leadership, such as technical leadership,
leadership ‘Program for Preparing Early Leaders’ (PROPEL;
measured by innovation, impact, and reputation, are much
Lovasz et al., 2012).This program highlighted two distinct
easier to evidence than ‘soft’ forms of leadership, such as
sets of attributes that were considered important for
people skills and emotional intelligence (Parrish, 2011).
an effective academic leader: those that can be readily
Moreover, there is little evidence to suggest that selection
taught (e.g., understanding the university context, rules,
and recruitment processes incorporate any formal
management of risk, feedback) and those that are difficult
assessments of whether new staff will have the ability to
to teach (e.g., passion for their discipline, personal
move into leadership roles (Buckley et al., 2010). In some
values, emotional intelligence, interest in staff, resilience).
cases, the terminology of recruitment advertisements has
The university identifies ‘career-track managers’ who
changed to reflect the need to recruit ‘leaders’ (see for
are at a formative point in their career and score well
instance The Association of American Medical Colleges in
in the ‘difficult to teach’ attributes. This group of future
Buckley et al., 2010).Although these guidelines emphasise
leaders then undertakes a formal program of leadership
the need to recruit those with leadership qualities, there
development that targets six interrelated components:
is little guidance or criteria as to what these leadership
mentoring, networking, big-picture, leadership skills,
qualities might entail, or how they should be assessed
active leadership, and reflective leadership (Lovasz et
(Buckley et al., 2010).
al., 2012). The program discusses multiple models of
Therefore, it is reasonable to conclude that an
leadership, giving participants the opportunity to reflect
applicant’s leadership experience, as evaluated in the
on a range of leadership styles that may be of interest or
current recruitment and promotion processes, is likely
suited to their personality and desired future position.The
to reflect ‘hard’ leadership: that is, technical or discipline
program also provides support for participants in the form
leadership. While technical leadership is undoubtedly
of teaching relief and an opportunity to interact with and
important in universities, as it is the prime source of
learn from senior leaders in their organisation. A review
intellectual authority, it may be of little practical use when
of the PROPEL program by Lovasz and colleagues (2012)
a senior academic becomes the leader of an organisational
concluded that leadership development programs can
unit. In such roles, softer leadership skills, which are harder
enable both succession planning and effective leadership
to teach and measure (Lovasz et al., 2012; Walumbwa et
skill development.
al., 2008), are perhaps more directly relevant. Despite
Outside of the Australian context, the Samuel Merrit
this, the existing guidelines and criteria for selection and
University in Oakland offered a leadership development
promotion committees in universities seem to provide
program to prepare interested academics for future
little or no emphasis on the types of ‘soft’ leadership skills
leadership positions (Berman, 2015). The program arose
that would promote effective academic leadership.
out of the experiences of academics that were ‘thrust into’ leadership positions, and has an emphasis on
Developing Academic Leadership
administrative and managerial skills. As such, the program was focused more on academic ‘management’ rather than
Traditionally, universities nurture and develop leaders in
‘leadership’ as defined in this paper. Berman describes the
one of two ways, or a combination of both: formal training,
program components, reports on participant experiences,
and experiential learning methods such as learning from
and evaluates the effectiveness of the program. The
others, learning on-the-job, and learning from critical
most appreciated aspect of the program was having
incidents (Berman, 2015; Drew et al., 2008; Hernez-
a peer cohort to learn with and from (Berman, 2015).
Broome & Hughes, 2004). Perhaps not surprisingly, those
The consensus of the participants was that they better
in academic leadership positions tend to express a desire
understood, and felt better equipped to deal with, the
for leadership ‘classes’ taught in much the same way as
challenges that leadership would bring. In Australia,
other university courses (Scott et al., 2008). Despite this,
similar results were reported from an academic leadership
formal leadership development programs in academe are
program at Curtin University in Perth (Ladyshewsky &
the exception not the norm, with most academic leaders
Flavell, 2011). In this case, the need to build collegiality
tending to learn on-the-job (Drew et al., 2008; Inman, 2011).
was built into the program, along with components that
However, there are a few examples of academic
addressed the demands of each participating department.
leadership programs which illustrate the potential
The delivery consisted of both experiential and classroom
102
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
(seminar) components, and, as with the program at Samuel
both formal programs and experiential learning as
Merrit University, participants expressed their particular
appropriate to the culture of the university and discipline
appreciation of the peer-learning aspect (Ladyshewsky &
area, as well as to the individual developmental needs of
Flavell, 2011).
the leader.
Experiential learning is typically more focused on the organic growth of leadership skills via mentoring,
Conclusions
on-the-job training and the sharing of lessons learnt. Ladyshewsky and Flavell (2011) suggest that leadership
Defining ‘effective’ academic leadership is complicated
development should include ‘the opportunity to learn
by the peculiarities of the academic context. It does
through experience in a supportive culture that allows for
seem clear though that current university recruitment
growth and change’ (p.129) within programs developed
and promotion procedures have not yet found a way to
specifically for the particular circumstances of academia.
adequately select for leadership experience and potential.
This process of experiential learning supports distributed
Current practice still tends to prioritise and reward
models of academic leadership as it fosters delegation,
technical achievements within an individual’s discipline,
ownership and responsibility within organisational units.
based on their research and teaching outcomes, as a
The process of experiential learning with colleagues has
surrogate for leadership. The implication of this is that
the added benefit of developing mutual trust within an
academic leaders are usually recruited and promoted
academic unit (Hurley, 2006). Mentoring can also assist
without a full assessment of their interpersonal skills and
with the process of informal leadership development,
strategic and operational competence. This must surely
through the socialisation of new staff members into the
exacerbate the current situation where academics believe
role and culture of the organisation (Drew et al., 2008;
they are being over-managed and under-led, potentially
Inman, 2011), as well as the development of emotional
resulting
intelligence through a cyclic approach that focuses on
within many organisational units. Moreover, the focus
reflection on what does and does not work (Parrish, 2011;
on technical performance in teaching and research does
Petriglieri et al., 2011). Critically, some form of support
not promote the broader forms of academic leadership
and mentoring for new leaders is essential. Just as new
advocated in this paper, namely the practice of carrying
academics often feel alienated and unsupported in their
out the institution’s strategic vision while supporting
work, so do new leaders (Drew et al., 2008). Therefore,
the development of intellectual authority and a shared
in addition to formal leadership development training,
identity that fosters collegiality.
in
under-performance
and
dissatisfaction
universities can usefully invest in more informal leadership
In the short term, this situation can be ameliorated
development initiatives that are designed to prepare and
with on-the-job leadership training and mentoring.
develop both future and existing leaders (Parrish, 2011).
In the longer term, universities need to develop a
Moreover, because learning about leadership is a gradual
much stronger emphasis on leadership development;
and ongoing process, it is important that academic
one that takes account of the need to facilitate the
institutions nurture those in leadership roles from day
development of leadership capability across levels and
one, and expose them to different types of experiences
over time. Universities should have explicit processes
(Inman, 2011).
to acknowledge and reward effective leaders through
These few case studies of formal and experiential
their recruitment and promotion procedures, without
leadership development demonstrate that, just as
sacrificing the special qualities that differentiate academic
no consensus exists as to what constitutes effective
environments from other sectors. The desired outcome
leadership in academia, no consensus has been reached
is to promote university leaders who are seen to be
regarding the best way to develop leaders (Drew et al.,
leading more than they manage, constructing supportive
2008). What we do know is that leadership development
environments in which their autonomous staff produce
is simultaneously multilevel and longitudinal, involving
desirable, high quality outcomes, and in which intellectual
multiple formal and informal initiatives (Day et al., 2014).
authority and collegiality are preserved. In short,‘learning
Critically, though, it is unlikely that universities can apply
to lead is a lifetime responsibility’ (Drew et al., 2008, p.
a ‘one size fits all’ approach to leadership development as
15) for both universities and academics and it is only by
discipline cultures, even within the same university, vary
properly promoting and developing academic leadership
considerably (Floyd, 2012). With this is mind, universities
that universities can effectively realise their vision for the
need to tailor leadership development programs, blending
future.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
103
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
Andrew P Bradley is an ARC Future Fellow and Professor of Biomedical Engineering at The University of Queensland, Australia. He is a Senior member of the IEEE and a Chartered Professional Engineer, Engineering Executive. Contact:bradley@itee.uq.edu.au Tim Grice is an Honorary Senior Fellow at The University of
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
Deem, R. & Brehony, K.J. (2005). Management as ideology: the case of ‘new managerialism’ in higher education. Oxford Review of Education, 31, 217235. Denis, J.L., Langley, A. & Sergi, V. (2012). Leadership in the plural. The Academy of Management Annals, 6, 211-283. Drew, G.M. (2006). Balancing academic advancement with business effectiveness? The dual role for senior university leaders. International Journal of Knowledge, Culture and Change Management, 6, 117-125.
Director of Leapfrog International.
Drew, G.M., Ehrich, L.C. & Hansford, B.C. (2008). An exploration of university leaders’ perceptions of learning about leadership. Leading and Managing, 14, 1-18.
Neil Paulsen is based in the Business School at the University
Fearn, H. (2010). The colour of money. The Times Higher Education Supplement. June 10, 2010, Issue 1951, p.43.
Queensland’s Sustainable Minerals Institute and the Founding
of Queensland, Australia. His work focuses on leadership, team and organisational processes.
References Allio, R.J. (2005). Leadership development: Teaching versus learning. Management Decision, 43, 1071-1077. Australian Public Service Commission. (2004). Guide to the Integrated Leadership System. Retrieved from http://www.apsc.gov.au/learn/frameworksand-guidelines/ils/guide-to-the-integrated-leadership-system (accessed 4 October 2014).
Floyd, A. (2012). ‘Turning points’: The personal and professional circumstances that lead academics to become middle managers. Educational Management Administration & Leadership, 40, 272-284. Fraser, S., & Harvey, M. (2008). Leadership and assessment: Strengthening the nexus: Final report. Strawberry Hills, NSW: Australian Learning and Teaching Council. Gardner, S.K., & Blackstone, A. (2013). ‘Putting in your time’: Faculty experiences in the process of promotion to professor. Innovative Higher Education, 38, 411-425. Goffee, R., & Jones, G. (2005). Managing authenticity. Harvard Business Review, 83, 85-94.
Ball, S. (2007). Leadership of academics in research. Educational Management Administration & Leadership, 35 (4), 449-477.
Gosling, J., Bolden, R., & Petrov, G. (2009). Distributed leadership in higher education: What does it accomplish? Leadership, 5, 299-310.
Berman, A. (2015). Academic leadership development: A case study. Journal of Professional Nursing, 31(4), 298–304.
Gunnarsdóttir, S. (2014). Servant leadership and job satisfaction in the University of Iceland. Stjórnmál og Stjórnsýsla, Autumn 2014, 10(2), 499-522.
Blackmore, J. & Sachs, J. (2000). Paradoxes of leadership and management in higher education in times of change: some Australian reflections. International Journal of Leadership in Education, 3, 1-16.
Hernez-Broome, G. & Hughes, R.L. (2004). Leadership development: Past, present, and future. Human Resource Planning, 27, 24-32.
Bolden, R., Gosling, J., & O’Brien, A. (2012). Academic leadership: Changing conceptions, identities and experiences in UK higher education. Review Paper Series. London: Leadership Foundation for Higher Education. Bolden, R., Jones, S., Davis, H., & Gentle, P. (2015). Developing and sustaining shared leadership in higher education. London: Leadership Foundation for Higher Education. Bryman, A. (2007). Effective leadership in higher education: A literature review. Studies in Higher Education, 32, 693-710. Bryman, A. (2009). Effective leadership in higher education. Final report. Review paper Series. London: Leadership Foundation for Higher Education. Buckley, P., Dauphinais, D., Miller, D.D., Rawson, J.V., Young, G., & Curd, N. (2010). Academic leadership searches: Evolving best practices. Journal of Healthcare Leadership, 10 (2), 61-67. Burke, C.S., Stagl, K.C., & Klein, C. (2006). What type of leadership behaviors are functional in teams? A meta-analysis. The Leadership Quarterly, 17, 288-307. Carter, M. Armenakis, A. Feild, H., & Mossholder, K. (2013). Transformational leadership, relationship quality, and employee performance during continuous incremental organizational change. Journal of Organizational Behavior, Vol.34(7), pp.942-958. Caproni, P. (2012). Management skills for everyday life: The practical coach. Boston: Prentice Hall. Day, D.V. (2001). Leadership development: A review in context. The Leadership Quarterly, 11, 581-613. Day, D.V., Fleenor, J.W., & Atwater, L.E. (2014). Advances in leader and leadership development: A review of 25 years of research and theory. The Leadership Quarterly, 25, 63-82.
104
Hesli, V.L., Lee, J.M., & Mitchell, S.M. (2012). Predicting rank attainment in political science: What else besides publications affects promotion? Political Science & Politics, 45, 475-492. Hulpia, H., Devos, G., Rosseel, Y. Vlerick, P. (2012). Dimensions of Distributed Leadership and the Impact on Teachers’ Organizational Commitment: A Study in Secondary Education. Journal of Applied Social Psychology, 42(7),1745-1784. Hurley. R.F. (2006). The decision to trust. Harvard Business Review, 84, 55-62. Inman, M. (2011). The journey to leadership for leader academics in higher education. Educational Management Administration & Leadership, 39, 228-241. Jones, G. (2011). Academic leadership and departmental headship in turbulent times. Tertiary Education and Management, 17(4), 279-288. Jones, S., Lefoe, G., & Harvey, M. (2012). Distributed leadership: A collaborative framework for academics, executives and professionals in higher education. Journal of Higher Education Policy and Management, 34, 67-78. Karmel, P. (1990). Higher education: Tensions and balance. Journal of Tertiary Educational Administration, 12, 329-337. Katzenbach, J.R. & Smith, D.K. (2005). The discipline of teams. Harvard Business Review, 83, 162-171. Kligyte, G., & Barrie, S. (2014). Collegiality: leading us into fantasy –the paradoxical resilience of collegiality in academic leadership. Higher Education Research & Development, 33 (1), 157-169. Ladyshewsky, R.K., & Flavell, H. (2011). Transfer of training in an academic leadership development program for program coordinators. Educational Management Administration & Leadership, 40(1), 127-147. Langland, E. (2012). Cultural narratives of academic leadership at the dawn
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
of the 21st century. Forum on Public Policy 2012(2). Retrieved from http:// forumonpublicpolicy.com/ vol2012. no2/womenleadership2012no2.html
Suresh, S. (2015). Research universities, innovation, and growth: IRI Medal Address. Research-Technology Management, 58 (6), 19(5).
Larson, E.W., & Gray, C.F. (2011). Project management: The managerial process. New York: McGraw Hill.
Vardi, I. & Quin, R. (2011). Promotion and the scholarship of teaching and learning. Higher Education Research & Development, 30, 39-49.
Lovasz, K., Dolnicar, S., & Vialle, W. (2012). The PROPEL Project. Succession planning at universities: Program for preparing early leaders (PROPEL). Final Report. Wollongong: University of Wollongong.
Van Noorden, R. (2010), A profusion of measures: scientific performance indicators are proliferating--leading researchers to ask afresh what they are measuring and why. Nature, 465 (7300), 864 (3).
Lumby, J. (2012). What do we know about leadership in higher education? Review Paper Series. London: Leadership Foundation for Higher Education.
Walumbwa, F.O., Avolio, B.J., & Gardner, W.L. (2008). Authentic leadership: Development and validation of a theory-based measure. Journal of Management, 34, 89-126.
Morris, L. (2011). From collegial engagement to performance management: The changing academic landscape in Australia. PhD Thesis, Victoria University, Australia. Parrish, D.R. (2011). Leadership in higher education: The interrelationships, influence and relevance of emotional intelligence. PhD Thesis, University of Wollongong, Australia. Petriglieri, G., Wood, J.D., & Petriglieri, J.L. (2011). Up close and personal: building foundations for leaders’ development through the personalization of management learning. Academy of Management Learning & Education, 10, 430-450. Pounder, J.S. (2001). ‘New leadership’ and university organisational effectiveness: Exploring the relationship. Leadership & Organization Development Journal, 22, 281-290.
Williams, J., Blackwell, C., & Bailey, L. (2010). The conceptualization and investment of leadership development by department heads in colleges of agriculture at land grant universities. Journal of Agricultural Education, 51, 81-89. Winchester, H., Lorenzo, S., Browning, L., et al. (2006). Academic women’s promotions in Australian universities. Employee Relations, 28, 505-522. Winter, R. (2009). Academic manager or managed academic? Academic identity schisms in higher education. Journal of Higher Education Policy and Management, 31, 121-131. Yielder, J. & Codling, A. (2004). Management and leadership in the contemporary university. Journal of Higher Education Policy and Management, 26 (1), 315-328.
Scott, G., Coates, H., & Anderson, M. (2008). Learning leaders in times of change: Academic leadership capabilities for Australian higher education. Sydney: University of Western Sydney and Australian Council for Educational Research.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Promoting leadership in Australian universities Andrew P Bradley, Tim Grice & Neil Paulsen
105
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
REVIEWS
I fought the law, and the law won… (Bobby Fuller Four, 1965) Higher Education and the Law by Sally Varnham, Patty Kamvounias & Joan Squelch (eds). ISBN 978 176002 025, Federation Press, 259 pp. (incl. index), 2015. Reviewed by Pamela O’Connor University academic and administrative managers operate
which, pursuant to the market-driven model, give central
in a highly complex legal and regulatory environment.
importance to the student experience and student voice.
While universities are established under separate Acts
Indigenous academics Irene Watson and Marcelle Burns
which confer wide powers on them, they are subject
contribute a chapter on the development of strategies
to many constraints imposed by other statutes and the
and policies for embedding indigenous knowledges in
general law. Universities face significant challenges in
university curricula. Gaby Ramia’s chapter shows how the
educating their office bearers and staff about the sources
regulation of educational services marketed to overseas
and limits of their powers and the nature of their legal
students has driven regulatory reforms benefiting both
duties. Higher Education and the Law was published
domestic and international students, while the welfare of
to serve the need for a comprehensive work that
international student welfare in extramural areas such as
surveys the variety of legal principles and issues which
work rights is neglected. Helen Fleming concludes Part I
arise in the governance and management of Australian
with an examination of the large array of administrative
universities.
statutes to which universities are subject as public
The editors are legal academics with a particular interest in the law as it applies to higher education. The
authorities, and finds that universities have responded with a risk management approach.
other 23 contributing authors are drawn from a range of
Based on these broad themes, Part II comprises 20
backgrounds and include academics from the disciplines
chapters by different authors, each examining one area
of law, education and public policy, university in-house
of law as it applies to higher education and noting any
counsel, barristers and legal practitioners who advise or
unresolved questions. Francine Rochford’s chapter goes
litigate in relevant matters, student ombuds, investigators,
to the heart of the relationship between universities and
mediators and adjudicators, student representatives and
their students, asking whether it is governed wholly or
advocates. The book seeks to do more than provide an
partly by contract. The relationship was traditionally
overview of the relevant areas of law. It highlights the
considered to be one of ‘status’, in which a student was
challenges for law in redefining the relationships between
a member of the university and subject to its governing
universities, government, staff and students in a time of
rules. Disputes were resolved by the university visitor or,
rapid regulatory and social change.
more recently, by a court applying university legislation
The broader context and themes are established by Part
and administrative law. Rochford finds no authoritative
I, which starts with Joan Squelch’s overview of the legal
ruling in Australia which confirms the widely held
framework for the regulation of universities in Australia,
assumption that a contract exists. An opportunity to
encompassing the principal State and Commonwealth
consider the point was missed in Griffith University v
Acts and statutory instruments, regulatory agencies and
Tang (2005) 221 CLR 99, as both parties agreed that the
funding. Sally Varnham’s chapter on university governance
enrolment of Ms Tang as a PhD candidate of the University
summarises the trend of recent changes to the sector as
did not give rise to a contractual relationship (although
‘massification, commodification and corporatisation aided
Justice Kirby suggested, at para 30, that ‘detailed evidence
by the accelerating impact of technology’, associated with
might have shaken this’). Rochford concludes that a
the move to a ‘market-driven model, commercialisation
contractual relationship remains a ‘theoretical possibility’,
and competition’ (pp. 16-17). In her chapter co-authored
but questions the reliance placed upon the contractual
with Jade Tyrrell, Varnham examines regulatory changes
analysis (pp. 90-91).
106
ISBN 978 176002 025, Federation Press, 259 pp. (incl. index), 2015.
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
Seven chapters of Part II examine the legal regulation of the relationship between universities and their students.
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
some guidance on the scope of the duty is gleaned from cases in the compulsory education sector.
Penny Kamvounias’ chapter discusses the application of
Five chapters of the book shift the focus to the
the Australian Consumer Law 2011 to the relationship,
relationship between the university and its staff. In their
including the provisions relating to unfair contract terms,
chapter on employment law, Jacquie Seemann and Katie
consumer guarantees and misleading and deceptive
Kossian observe that the relationship differs significantly
conduct. She observes that the relationship must be
from other employment relationships due to factors
contractual for the Australian Consumer Law to apply,
which are peculiar to the university context.These include
and agrees with Rochford that there is overseas authority
the special nature of universities as corporations with
but no clear Australian authority that this precondition is
academic functions, the status of academics as members
satisfied (pp. 93-94).
of the university, and the provisions for academic
In his chapter on Student Conduct and Discipline,
freedom. The authors discuss how the courts have taken
Bruce Lindsay finds that while universities have wide
account of these unique features, and give examples of
delegated law-making powers to maintain order through
recent decisions of industrial tribunals in the university
disciplinary rules, the law sets limits to the scope of what
employment context.
can be designated ‘misconduct’. The understandable
In the next chapter, Joan Squelch outlines the model
desire of universities to conduct disciplinary proceedings
Work Health and Safety Act which represents a co-operative
in an informal manner may lead then to adopt procedures
federalism initiative towards a national legislative scheme
which may fall short of what natural justice requires in
which has been adopted by most Australian jurisdictions.
some circumstances. The
next
procedures
two for
Nigel Stobbs’ chapter on academic freedom explores chapters
internal
respectively resolution
of
examine
one unique aspect of the university employment
student
relationship
complaints, and the external resolution of complaints
instruments,
which
is
recognised
against the public universities by public sector
agreements and university codes of conduct. Stobbs
ombuds. Kamvounias reports that the number of
cautions that ‘disputes about perceived or actual breaches
complaints reaching the ten external ombuds is small
of academic freedom tend to arouse passions and cause
but increasing. Ombuds can recommend redress for
damage disproportionate to the incident which triggered
individuals, systemic changes and some can undertake
the dispute’ (p. 204). He suggests that managers should
investigations of their own motion, such as the
take seriously staff perceptions of threats to academic
Victorian Ombudsman’s 2011 investigation into how
freedom, and seek to reframe the debate about the
universities deal with international students. A related
scope of academic freedom to focus on the dignity of all
chapter by Myles Stillwell recommends that consensual
members of the university (p. 212). In the current climate
dispute resolution processes should be emphasised in
of increasingly polarised public debate, universities would
dealing with disagreements between members of the
do well to heed Stobbs’ advice.
Commonwealth
in
international
legislation,
enterprise
university, both staff and students, and that universities
Two chapters deal with intellectual property issues.
should support these processes through in-house
Mary Wyburn considers the nature of the intellectual
mediation services and staff training.
property rights likely to arise from commercialised
Two chapters are devoted to examining the obligations
research by universities, and discusses the legal principles
of universities to students under equal opportunity
applied in determining claims to the rights. Universities
law. Joy Cumming and Ralph Mawdsley conclude that
commonly make their own rules for ownership of
universities should be able to withstand a challenge
intellectual property created by their staff and incorporate
based on direct discrimination in undertaking special
the
measures to address disadvantage and need. However,
represents one type of intellectual property right. Michael
they will need to ensure that students admitted under
Fraser’s chapter deals with the ownership of copyright in
special measures are then supported to succeed.
materials generated by university employees. He argues
Elizabeth Dickson considers the scope of the university’s
that university policies and contracts should disclaim
duty to make ‘reasonable adjustments’ for students with
university ownership of teaching materials, as they
a disability in accordance with the Commonwealth’s
generally do in relation to scholarly works.
rules
into
employment
contracts. Copyright
Disability Standards for Education (2009). While she finds
A chapter by Robert Horton, Kerry Smith and Abigail
no litigated cases involving higher education providers,
Tinsley discusses the extent of a university’s potential
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
Reviewed by Pamela O’Connor
107
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
liability in the tort of negligence, in relation to students
The book provides a handy reference for university
and other persons. The authors discuss the Civil Liability
counsel, advisers, managers, committee members, and
Act regimes introduced by most Australian states in 2002-
student advocates. The links between topics covered by
03. They find relatively little Australian authority on the
the different chapters are explained, and cross references
scope of a university’s duty of care to its students. The
included.While there is no bibliography, footnotes provide
chapter includes an interesting discussion about whether
references to additional sources.
a university may be liable in negligence for failure to educate a student to an appropriate standard.The authors
I will be very glad to take a copy of the book to meetings of university committees.
find that, while such ‘educational negligence’ claims have been rejected in the US on public policy grounds,
Professor Pamela O’Connor is Head of the USC Law School,
a claim on behalf of a school student with disabilities has
Faculty of Arts, Business and Law, University of the Sunshine
succeeded in the UK.
Coast, Queensland, Australia.
Teaching by design? Design by teaching? Studio teaching in higher education by Elizabeth Boling, Roland A Schwier, Colin M Gray, Kennon Smith & Katy Campbell ISBN-978-1-138-90243-5 (pbk), London, UK, Routledge, 300 pp., 2017. Reviewed by Andrys Onsman This is an excellent book. It covers the history, present
has moved well past that. Indeed, its subtitle is ‘Selected
and possible future of studio teaching in higher education.
Design Cases’ and none of the editors is an architect. Most
Most importantly, it points out what pretends to be studio
of the chapters are concerned with how to teach in a
teaching but isn’t and why that is a bad idea. And as a
studio rather than what to teach. Content still has a place
bonus, it has a section on pedagogic approaches that
of course but skills is an equal partner.
work best in a studio setting. By way of disclaimer, I should
One of the biggest obstacles to good design teaching
point out that studio is the fundamental way of teaching
in studios is finding and holding onto appropriate spaces.
in the Melbourne School of Design (MSD).
Even in the MSD’s brand spanking new, award winning
Much has been written over the last three or four
building, space is already at a premium as student
decades on the history of studio teaching – especially
numbers grow. Studios need to be big enough and well
from architecture. For example, Joan Ockman’s edited
equipped enough to allow students to think, prototype, to
collection ‘Architecture School: three centuries of
fail, to be critiqued and to feel comfortable in it. And the
educating architects in North America’ is a pretty solid
next group after needs the same. And the group after that.
introduction to the state of play in the US and Canada.
Storage room becomes essential. So does lighting, security,
It seems that as studio teaching is spreading to other
space, tables, internet reliability, 24 hour access. Studio
disciplines, architecture is keen to claim it as its own
teaching disturbs the linear curriculum and subverts the
pedagogic approach. But time and tide waits for no one
straight-jacketing of regular rooms, regular behaviour, and
and the development of the internet has created the
regular hours. It’s hard to be innovative and experimental
virtual studios, which could be argued to be missing the
when everything in the learning space conspires against
basic point of studios but is at the heart of where things
that. Many of the contributors directly or indirectly make
are headed.
and illustrate the point.
This book is a case in point. It acknowledges the
All the important aspects of studio get a good
studio’s history in architecture but assumes that design
mention: design thinking, collaborative problem solving,
108
Teaching by design? Design by teaching? Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
communication and research that isn’t stultified by
to fool anyone for long. He urges us to engage with the
methodologies sclerotised by the physical sciences in
epistemological aspects – the physical environment, the
their blinkered drive for reductionist truths. Importantly,
pedagogic strategies, the disciplinary context – that make
the issues are raised and analysed by way of example
studio teaching a rich learning experience. It’s a call to
and reflection on actual events, failures and re-workings
arms that needs to be taken up.
feature as much as successes and triumphs. In that sense, it is an inspirational collection of tales. The last chapter in the book is Colin M Gray’s
This is an excellent book: everyone even vaguely interested in art, design, creativity, expertise and learning should read it.
discussion on where studios might be going (he’s not afraid to embrace human-computer interaction) in which
Andrys Onsman lectures at the Melbourne School of Design,
he warns that simply calling something studio isn’t going
University of Melbourne, Australia.
HETL be all right on the night! Creative learning in higher education by Linda S Watts & Patrick Blessinger. ISBN-978-1-138-96236-1 (pbk), Routledge, 245 pp., 2017. Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
Patrick Blessinger is the founder and executive director
creatively actually entails: despite having done a PhD
of the International Higher Education Teaching and
on the topic and having read this book. But nonetheless,
Learning Association (commonly known as HETL) and
this collection has stimulated some thinking – albeit at
Linda Watts is the organisation’s secretary. HETL supports
times in opposition to the ideas espoused therein. That,
pedagogical pluralism, diversity of learning, sustainable
apparently, was one of the aims – to stimulate the reader’s
learning and world peace. While such ambitions may, at
imagination. Job done, I guess.
first blush, seem somewhat hippyish, in fact, education by
The foreword is by Norman Jackson, whose excellent
way of secular schooling is probably the most likely way
book ‘Developing creativity in higher education: An
of achieving world peace, so more power to them. I don’t
imaginative curriculum’ took a pretty good crack at
know whether ‘hippyish’ actually is a word – beyond the
pushing creativity to the forefront in higher education
Humpty Dumpty Thesis on Semantics – but it sprang to
but who is best known for his defence of Kuhn’s notion
mind on a few occasions in the reading of the essays and
of paradigmatic incommensurability, an activity that was
reports in this collection. Whilst most avoid floating off
always going to be highly contested. Jackson favoured
into the esoteric bandwidth, some skirt perilously close to
the idea that teachers ought not to define what creativity
the murky waters of ephemerality, and one or two of them
is in order to get the students to take that definition on
dive in head first. But – and with apologies to women and
board but to get them to articulate and substantiate their
vegetarians – one man’s meat is another man’s poison and
own individual ideas of what their creativity could be.
HETL is a broad church where all are welcome.
As far as I know, Jackson hasn’t ever really talked about
My overall concern is that there does not seem to be
what creative learning is but we get a clue in the final
an underlying conceptual framework that tells us what
sentence of the introduction, which concludes with ‘…
creative learning actually is. Does it refer to learning
our understanding of creative learning and learning to
something creatively or to learning to be creative? It
be creative’. Do we then assume that the two are the
seems to be the former and therein lies the rub. Learning
same? Earlier he says that he particularly likes the book’s
something creatively suggests that it is an activity in
‘emphasis on “creative learning” and the many different
opposition to learning non-creatively and I have no idea
interpretations that are offered’. But then he goes on to
what that could be as a process. On the other hand,
cite Vygotsky and assert that Comrade Lev Semyonovich
I also have no clear idea of what learning something
positioned creativity ‘firmly in the act of learning’, which
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
HETL be all right on the night! Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
109
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
is at best a contestable interpretation of the great man’s
case studies that exemplify various strategies used by
notion of a cultural-historical psychology. Jackson had
instructors to help students get to their own creative
earlier, in a similar vein, pressganged first Carl Rogers and
solutions. But I take issue with the first sentence in the
then Gregory Bateson into his argument, with a similar
summary: ‘This chapter addressed creative learning in
lack of persuasiveness.
higher education’ because it didn’t. It addressed guiding
Blessinger and Watts’ introductory chapter – History
students to broadening the range of possible solutions to
and Nature of Creative Learning – begins with the best
a set problem.The chapter holds a swag of good ideas and
supported sentence I’ve ever read. No fewer than 25
tips for teaching but essentially there is nothing new in
papers are cited as supporting the claim that creativity is
terms of learning. If anything, it champions using design
process and outcome oriented, domain and field specific,
thinking as a fundamental approach to problem solving.
and embedded in culture. It is a clear summary of where
While that is undoubtedly a very good message, it doesn’t
creativity sits in knowledge generation, and I have no
really articulate what creative learning actually is. But I
doubt that it will be used extensively as a springboard
agree with the idea that it takes resilience, perseverance
for more detailed or focused work. If I am allowed to
and ‘grit’ to succeed at learning – even if that’s not all that
photocopy only one chapter of the book to use in my
creative.
own teaching, this will be it. But what it doesn’t do is
Kanta
Kochar-Lindgren’s
chapter,
‘Participatory
to lay out a definition of creative learning. The closest it
Choreographies, our Future Cities, and the Place of
comes is to state that ‘Creative learning is an intentional
Creative Learning in International Arts Exchanges’, tracks
act’, which doesn’t get us very far because so, presumably,
a Indo-US collaborative dance, theatre-music and mixed
is non-creative learning. Instead, the chapter has argued
media project on the theme of water – the Periyar River
(and done so very well) that creativity is an intentional
in India and the Mississippi in the US. Given that it is hard
act, an argument that has been substantiated by those 25
to make any real comment on what was achieved because
papers cited earlier and a whole army more. Only the most
I haven’t seen the performance, it sounds quite wonderful
devoutly religious amongst us maintain that creativity is a
– given that I am one of those advocating a broader
gift bestowed by God on a lucky few, or if you’re Keith
paradigm than only the scientific for understanding the
Richards, the product of illegal mind-altering substances.
environment. I am sure that the handful of specially
Seeing that the chapter makes up all of Part I Principles
selected students involved in the project learnt to exceed
and Concepts, the lack of a conceptual framework is
their reach, and I have no doubt that art as a research
somewhat disconcerting.
methodology is a rigorous and legitimate way to gain new
Part II Successful Practices in Creative Learning Cases
knowledge. For the participants, the axes of the learning
may provide a framework the reader can hang his or her
were collaboration and exploratory thinking, crossing
hat on. It consists of 8 chapters, taking on such issues as
knowledge domain boundaries at will, distilling essential
collaborative learning, play, meaningful learning spaces,
reflexive and reflective responses into a work of art, as
innovative pedagogy, participatory choreographies and
legitimate as any essay or experiment. But again, I wonder
interdisciplinarity – all of which are currently warm to
how that is ‘creative’ learning. The students and artists
hot topics in international discourse. Fredricka Reisman
were not learning to be creative – they already were.
equates creativity with innovation pedagogy; that is,
They weren’t learning the science and mathematics in a
supporting students to experiment with and utilise their
creative way – they were learning it as and when they
own creativity to solve problems. The main diagnostic
needed it for a particular purpose. Of course, the cherry-
tool used in the study is the Reisman Diagnostic Creativity
picked students involved had a wonderful opportunity
Assessment (RDCA), an app that taps 11 ‘creativity
to increase their artistic skills, their approaches and
characteristics’: originality, fluency, flexibility, elaboration,
their conceptions through working with talented and
tolerance of ambiguity, resistance to premature closure,
committed artists but I can’t see how their learning was
convergent thinking, divergent thinking, risk-taking,
creative even though the output was undoubtedly artistic.
intrinsic motivation and extrinsic motivation. Variations
The next essay by Gray Kochar-Lindgren is called
on that list abound, and few would argue about its
‘Configuring Interdisciplinarity’and discusses the common
constitution in general terms. Reisman acknowledges
core at the University of Hong Kong. He concludes his
that her preferred definition of creativity (that proffered
description of what is happening at HKU with stating
by Paul Torrance) is entirely a personal choice. So far, so
that ‘Creative learning, in this context, is an interactive
good but then comes a change of tack. Seven illuminative
multiscalar practice that actively constructs connections
110
HETL be all right on the night! Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
between sites, questions, capacities, materials, methods
illustrate the point. Giles and McCarthy place that point
and experiences that, incrementally shaping collective
in a conducive learning environment. It’s an interesting
and individual dispositions, creates a tendency toward.’ So,
chapter and especially of interest to teacher education
that’s creative learning, then.
and how teaching creatively is a great skill to have up your
The notion of interdisciplinary connectivity is all
sleeve.There’s not a lot about creative learning, though.
the rage these days, isn’t it? Few if any universities still
Chapter 6 by Nives Doisak and Cinnamon Hillyard
trumpet in their advertising rhetoric that they are
promises to set the record straight because it’s titled
retaining their ‘silos’ because that’s what has worked in
‘Creative Learning Strategies’ and surely here we will
the past.We know that students learn best in collaborative
find what it is. On the one hand, it is disappointing
teams – well, not those who prefer and thrive working
to be thwarted once again – there is really nothing
under a more defined structure or those with clearly
about creative learning per se – but on the other, it is
defined goals or those with socialisation difficulties but
an excellent and affirming chapter on the benefits of
most of the others, probably – that are set well-thought-
collaborative learning and how to go about setting that
out problems to solve and are encouraged to do so
up in your teaching environment. It’s not so much about
creatively or scientifically or by way of design, whichever
how students can collaboratively learn to be creative or
is the best fit. Finding connections between apparently
even creatively learn to be collaborative but more about
disparate things is more or less how we’ve always done
how working collaboratively is more effective and better
that in the real world, and academia is finally catching up.
for the students’ well-being. The authors claim that the
All of that is well and good but I’m still unsure as to what
activities they discuss are examples of creative learning
about constructing a tendency toward – italicised or not
but that’s a long bow to draw because collaborative
– is creative in terms of learning.
learning is as much dependent on expertise as it is on
I admit to trepidation when I read any essay that starts
creativity. In essence, all meaningful learning is.
with how long the writer has been doing what he or she
Halfway through the book and I’m giving up on finding
is writing about – ‘In my ninety years as a butcher, I’ve
out what creative learning actually is and how it differs
learnt a thing or two…’ and when two authors start with
from other types of learning. So far, there’s been a lot of
‘As teachers with more than thirty years of experience…’
really interesting stuff to consider. In Linda Watts’ chapter
I start to worry. I mean, is that 30 years between them,
on ‘Mindful Assessment in Higher Education’ I read that HE
which would make 15 each at best, or 30 each, which
is shifting from ‘what is taught’ to ‘what is learnt’ and ‘what
would mean that they trained in the pre-digital age, when
mindful practice might offer this paradigm shift in terms
caning children wasn’t yet a crime? And how does being a
of creative learning’. Well, since you ask, mindful practice,
teacher of advanced years relate to university teaching for
as far as I can tell, is learning things apprehendingly
students who will need to find jobs in 2020. I don’t know;
and comprehendingly, a notion for teaching poetry put
maybe I’m over-thinking this. Still….
forward by Nora Mitchell in 1999, an article difficult to
The central argument of the chapter by David Giles and
find and one that doesn’t seem to have gained much
Clare McCarthy – ‘Creating Meaningful Learning Spaces
traction in the field. Generally, the chapter seems to
through Phenomenological Strategies’ – is posited at the
suggest that people in the ‘Helping Professions’ should
onset: ‘We will argue in this chapter that the teacher-
learn to be both affectively empathic and cognitively
student relationship is always mattering within our
sympathetic and somewhat as an after-thought, preferably
teaching-learning experiences, whether we attend to this
do that creatively.
or not.’ (p. 66) Apparently in an earlier publication David
The following chapters follow much the same line – no
Giles argued that ‘the teacher-student relationship is
one seems prepared to say clearly what creative learning
experienced as an improvised play that has uncertainties
is. It seems to be one of those ideas that everyone initially
for both the teacher and the student’. I think I know what
agrees with but when it comes to a workable definition,
that means – even if ‘mattering’ isn’t really a word – but
no one has quite the same understanding of it. Perhaps
it seems to be somewhat of a truism to say that teachers
that is the point but if it is, it seems either so obvious as
who approach their practice as a relational rather than a
to be meaningless or so ephemeral as to be little more
dictatorial activity are more likely to nurture students who
than puffery.
think widely. The point, by deduction at least, seems to
Part III of the book consists of three essays, including
be that thinking widely is the basis of thinking creatively.
one by Robert Kaplan entitled ‘Developing Creative
There are four interesting if rambling case-studies to
Competencies Through Improvisation – Living Musically’,
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
HETL be all right on the night! Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
111
A
U
S
T
R
A
L
I
A
N
U
N
I
V
E
R
S
I
T
I
E
S
’
R
E
V
I
E
W
which, as a Music teacher, caused me a great deal
students learn. We learn that creativity is not a gift, not a
of consternation. I have trouble understanding how
choice, not a skill, not a practice but, depending on the
appropriating ‘the history of the Holocaust as a lens to
particular instance, a contextual and dynamic imbroglio
scrutinise one’s own life story’ will make me realise ‘the
of all four. Watts and Blessinger identify 10 principles,
foundations to [my] own moral response to such evil’
with the proviso that these are not to be considered as
because ‘a large percentage of the people who oversaw
procedural elements (which would go against the thesis
the murder of six million Jews had doctoral degrees from
of creative learning): playfulness, improvisation, rhythm,
some of the ‘great’ universities of the era’ (pp. 191-2).
resourcefulness/innovation, resilience, responsiveness,
Mordecai Schreiber in his book Explaining the Holocaust:
reflection, reciprocity and irreverence. Well, that just
How and Why It Happened, states that ‘more than a few
about covers everything – except, of course, science, ICT,
[rather than ‘a large percentage’] in the Nazi hierarchy
mathematics, statistics and a whole chunk of design.
had PhDs’ but then adds that ‘Many were raised in God-
There is a lot in this book that is worth considering,
fearing Catholic or Lutheran families’ (p. 46), loved their
even though or even because, as the editors acknowledge,
families and pets. Schreiber states definitively that the one
many of the contentions have become ‘flashpoints for
thing they had in common was that they were all racist
controversy’ (p. 229). Few of us working in the sector
(and, not to forget, anti-Semitic, homophobes, antiziganists
would argue with the idea that we want students to
and not overly keen on communists, artists or free-
become life-long, independent and curious learners. The
thinking intellectuals). I’m not sure why PhDs are singled
book seems to argue that the role of the HE educator
out – surely being a good Catholic or Lutheran with the
is to help students use their inherent creativity in their
concomitant philosophy of not killing is more apt? Still,
learning, and that that will go a long way to achieving it,
apparently the way to prevent such atrocities to ever
and it exemplifies a lot of ideas that may help achieve it.
happen again is to ‘live musically’. Or maybe I misread it.
But there is also a lot of narrative that provides little of
Finally, part IV is by Watts and Blessinger and considers
value beyond ‘show-and-tell’, case studies and examples,
the future of creative learning by synthesising the
and they muddy the waters rather than exemplify good
preceding chapters. It sets out clearly what creative
practice.
learning is – fanning the vital flame of independent
Perhaps a discussion on why a clearer framework
learning and an ardent desire for truth, ‘whether
would be problematic at the onset may have counteracted
accomplished by efforts from the student, the instructor,
the after-taste of conceptual equivocation but overall it’s
the learning environment or, in the best scenarios, a
a worthwhile addition to the discourse on learning in the
combination of the three’ (p. 213) – and what it leads to –
tertiary sector.
‘unconventional perspectives, new questions, innovative research, imaginative findings and changed outlooks’ (p.
Andrys Onsman still lectures at the Melbourne School of
214) – which one hopes is in addition to all the other things
Design, University of Melbourne, Australia.
112
HETL be all right on the night! Reviewed by Andrys Onsman
vol. 59, no. 1, 2017
MAKE THE MOST OF YOUR NTEU MEMBER BENEFITS
With your NTEU Member Advantage program, access savings on hotels & accommodation, dining, flights, car hire and more. The program offers you and your family unlimited use and allows you to save money on your everyday expenses. Log in now with your member number to your dedicated website and access an extensive range of financial and lifestyle benefits:
www.memberadvantage.com.au/nteu
For more information, email info@memberadvantage.com.au or call 1300 853 352
Since 1958, the Australian Universitiesâ&#x20AC;&#x2122; Review has been encouraging debate and discussion about issues in higher education and its contribution to Australian public life.
Want to receive your own copy of Australian Universitiesâ&#x20AC;&#x2122; Review (AUR)? AUR is published by the National Tertiary Education Union (NTEU) twice a year. NTEU members are entitled to a free subscription. However, this subscription is on an opt-in basis, so you need to let us know. If you are an NTEU member and would like to receive your own copy of AUR, send us an email at aur@nteu.org.au. Subscription rates for non-members are available at www.aur.org.au. If you would like to become an NTEU member, contact the local Branch office at your institution, or join online at www.nteu.org.au/join.
www.aur.org.au
“The whole purpose of education is to turn mirrors into windows.” Sydney J. Harris
Every day you inspire, helping people grow. You’re the leaders, the educators and the professional staff that make aspiring students’ dreams possible. That’s why we’re invested in you. As a customer owned bank, dedicated solely to the education community, our profits go back to you through competitive financial solutions, more personalised service and support of education. Helping each other do more, be more, achieve more. Tertiary employees and their families, nationwide are welcome to bank with us.
Call 1300 654 822 I Visit victeach.com.au
Bank I Save I Borrow I Invest I Protect